#the things that call between the trees
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Note
So with Fae!Dick, we all know that Bruce is just⊠not gonna say anything bc of his own mental health, but do you think the other batkids notice anything once they come along?
On one hand, I think someone would have to notice. If not Jason, then Tim, Steph, Barbara, or Damian bc, well, theyâre BATS. They literally have been trained to notice things.
On the other hand, though, I think it would be HILARIOUS if they just attributed Dickâs Fae nature to him just being weird. Like, completely unaware he isnât human. Maybe not entirely realistic but I think it leaves for some interesting comedic moments đ
Honestly at one point I think it all devolves into plausible deniability. đđ
Jason is the first to notice something amiss, obviously. But he joins Bruce in pretending itâs just Dickâs general weirdness. After all, as long as the dog just howls once in a while itâs not necessarily a wolf, right? And Dick, after the initial hang up and trying to kill him a little, is sweet as a summerâs day to him and viciously protective to boot. Galas and all the rich people there that used to treat Jason like a circus animal arenât a problem anymore because Dick always swoops in like a bat out of hell and distracts the creepy old ladies with a charming smile until they walk away with vacant eyes. Itâs all pretty funny. And very weird. But hey, Jason gets a laugh out of it and that secretive little grin from Dick so whatever.
Tim I headcanon has Dick all figured out within a month of officially meeting him (the opposite of this would be Tim never figuring it out which is also kinda funny and just attributing it to his circus past or something) and is veeery cautious about interacting with Dick for a time. It makes Dick kind of sad and Tim can only withstand the puppy eyes so long until he caves.
Steph just kinda shrugs and accepts Dickâs strangeness at face value. It ainât hurting her so why should she bother? Dick is cool. She likes Dick. End of story, thank you and good day. And yeah, fine, some of his habits are downright weird and everything but who is she to judge? And heâs always down to cause mischief with her which is?? Super cool???? Even the more devious pranks she can bribe him into joining by handing him a jar of fresh honey or hand picked fruit!! Anybody trying to say shit about Dick lands them on her hit list, period.
Cass is Cass. Nobody can fool her. She may not know what Dick is, but sheâs painfully aware heâs other. Most wildlife treats him like bees would their queen, thereâs always the scent of pines and rain following him. Dickâs body language says âplayful-content-happyâ but his eyes say âdark-dangerous-predatorâ. Itâs all very conflicting; a study of contradictions. Cass learns to go by what his body language says and quickly finds a kindred spirit in Dick, who somehow always seems to know exactly what she tries to express but has trouble translating into words.
I headcanon Damian grew up with folklore so while his first theory may not be âfaeâ he definitely has Dick down as something other than human. Which means he must be powerful. Which means Damian must keep himself in Dickâs good graces in the hopes of making the creature teach him how to be powerful in turn. And, well, the kid grew up with a grandad that regularly takes dips in a magical swimming pool. I donât think thereâs much that can genuinely shock him lol.
Duke is⊠well, heâs the sensible one so of course heâs the first one to actually ask questions. And then proceeds to go nearly insane because??? Nobody seems to?? Care???? That Dick just rotated his head a full 360°???? Or that the manor sure af isnât supposed to??? Randomly add hallways???? Or that thereâs a whole ass SWAMP that appeared in the basement overnight???? Or a door that leads straight into the forest?????? Duke very nearly nopes the hell out because thatâs too much even for him. But finally, finally someone takes pity on him (I headcanon itâs Cass) and she doesnât explain anything per se, she just kind of⊠shows Duke. Shows him around the manor, introduces him to twisting halls and strange rooms, takes him to where Dick is lounging with the rest of the family, purring like a content cat. And Duke still doesnât understand, not completely, but Dick smiles at him with too many, too sharp teeth and tugs him into the huge cuddle pile and?? Are those feathers on his neck?? No, he must have imagined it. Anyway, Duke thinks he can handle this⊠strangeness, if it scores him a family like this. Itâs Gotham, right? Weirder things happen here on the daily.
Omg this turned into a whole ass essay Iâm so sorry đ°đ
đâš
#ghost talks#fae dick grayson#faerie folk#the other things#pagan folklore#the things from the woods#the ones that grin from darkness#the birds with no feathers#the things that call between the trees#jason todd#batfamily#dick grayson#robin#batfam#bruce wayne#tim drake#red hood#duke thomas#stephanie brown#Cassandra Cain#Damian wayne#Damian al ghul
297 notes
·
View notes
Text
some bros just having a nice friendship hangout in the woods (they are roommates)
#my best drawings of them always arise from me listening to the hazards of love on repeat#shoutout that album it rocks and inspires me so much dude#Finnâs probably whispering something about lichens or something because thatâs what he does best#âitâs actually a symbiotic relationship between a fungus and Cyanobacteria isnât that something?â#âformerly in a group called mycophycophytaâ he whispers lovingly#thatâs how he flirts they tell you random facts about everything (usually plants/fungus)#Finn at the club (heâd never be at the club): sooo did you know some trees communicate through fungus in their root systems#my art#digital art#procreate#artists on tumblr#digital illustration#illustration#original art#my ocs#doodle#art#drawing#artwork#oc#oc artist#oc art tag#oc artwork#original character#original character art#digital doodle#digital artist#if thereâs one thing Iâm going to do itâs draw the forest#digital drawing#oc art
35 notes
·
View notes
Text
something that really frustrates me about Discourse(TM) re: stories in video games is that the vast majority of people who engage in those discussions seem utterly incapable of considering anything besides the literal text of the game and will not acknowledge any meta elements of a game, how it functions as a product, etc.
like i'm seeing people argue about the point of giving majima amnesia in pirate yakuza, and i'm only seeing shit like "it was pointless bc he just ended up remembering anyway", "he wouldn't have gotten as invested in noah if he hadn't lost his memory", etc etc, like. gamers. they gave him amnesia because this game is meant to be an intro to majima for people who picked up the series with y7/y8. y7 in particular did huge numbers and brought in a ton of people who are new to the series. they wanted those people to be able to play the game without being completely lost but also didn't want to try to dump 7 games' worth of majima lore on them to get them up to speed. giving him amnesia and transplanting him to a completely different setting lets them do that, while also letting them slowly reintroduce the parts of majima's backstory that they want new players to know over the course of the game. i'd bet my bottom dollar that his amnesia + hawaii as the setting were among the first things about the game that were decided on for that specific reason, and everything else followed from that. any function/value his amnesia may or may not have had wrt the narrative was entirely secondary.
like im not saying we need to take a super ~academic~ or ~rigorous~ approach to discussing the wacky pirate game, but can we use our brains at least a little bit?
#rambles#yakuza liveblogging#pirate yakuza#pirate yakuza spoilers#(bit of a stretch to call this spoilers imo but just in case)#you think pirate yakuza in hawaii just fell out of a coconut tree? it exists in the context in which it was made and all that came before#there are obviously other factors going into these decisions as well#obviously hawaii was the setting bc they already had the honolulu map#and by god if rgg makes an entire new overworld map theyre gonna get their moneys worth out of it#and its kinda necessary for narrative continuity from y8 etc etc#but like. idk what people who think his amnesia is pointless and shouldnt have been in the game were expecting lmfao#for as much as i wouldve liked 3jima adventures on the high seas where they constantly refer to y0-y6 that was never happening#now is there a world in which they couldve pulled off a solid intro to majima for the y7/y8 gamer without pulling the amnesia card? yes#however. it wouldve been a very fine line to walk between giving enough context for the average smooth-brained gamer to keep up#while also not having it come across as super clunky/unnatural#amnesia is the easier solution by far and it's absolutely unsurprising they went with the easy solution for the wacky spinoff game#anyway. begging gamers to understand that games are texts (and ultimately products) that exist in the real world#that are influenced & informed by things that exist outside the game itself#not these pocket dimensions that have to be considered exclusively on the basis of the in-universe settings/rules/narrative
8 notes
·
View notes
Text
everybody who went to a private catholic school name the craziest personal belief an instructor lectured the class on.
i'll go first: mentally disabled people are free of original sin, just like animals, so they get a free pass to heaven
#bonus points if the lecture was not-so-subtly referencing you specifically#ye i was the only super obviously autistic kid in my class since we did not have special ed classes or accommodations of any kind#and yes this teacher did seem to believe that i fell into the category of 'mentally disabled people who are like animals'#oddly enough this kind of made me her favorite student#she was really big on infantilizing ppl who were a certain level of mentally disabled#and yeah i guess dehumanizing too#except like how people says 'all doggos are good boys'#and even if a dog bites someone you can't like claim that dogs know the difference between good or evil#so it's not like...a fucking sin or something#so yeah she did openly express this stuff in class#i can't remember her explanation for mentally disabled ppl being free of original sin#but it was like tied in with the whole 'tree of knowledge' thing#and how not having that knowledge/sin is what makes us like innocent and dumb#got compared to a dog and also a lamb. not directly. like she did not call me out by name#but the entire class was super uncomfy because it was really obvious she was indirectly talking about me#at the time i was also like 'huh that explains some of her behavior around me'#and also thought it was hilarious that i got a free pass to heaven in her mind#also thought it was funny that she thought i was mentally disabled#because at this point i just thought i was a deeply weird person being mistaken for a mentally disabled person#but uh nope. i was like. really autistic. like lots of classic negative shit too like biting other kids and self-harmful stims and stuff
2 notes
·
View notes
Text
Weird Al mention
#me when I randomly bring up Weird Al to my family all the time#me when my Mom bought me some food that was in a Weird Al song#Woah just like the Weird Al song#me when I'm having a serious discussion with my sibling and I have to bring up Weird Al between topics#I forget why I even did that#OH#IT'S BCUZ WE WERE TALKING ABT HOW TECHNOLOGY IS SO PREVALENT NOWADAYS#and then I mentioned that Weird Al being in his 60s was watching TV and listening to the radio instead of playin outside#so it's always been a thing for certain kids to enjoy staying inside more than going out and playing#and also generally the way the world is nowadays they're getting rid of like all kid friendly structures and architecture#everything becoming minimalistic and not having walkable sidewalks and trying to get rid of NATURE#y'know those spikes on trees and shit to get rid of BIRDS#hostile architecture that's what it's called#makes things worse for EVERYONE#anyway LMAO derailing my own post#I am Weird Al-ing it up babey
3 notes
·
View notes
Text
no actually going on T somehow awakened me to a part of my gender that i didnt rly think existed and that's honestly so cool. like. i fully went into starting T thinking i was a Trans Man(tm) but as i'm weaning off it a year and a half later i've realized my genderfuckery is so much more fucked than i previously thought and like......no genuinely that's so cool.
#like i still consider myself transmasc? and i am very gay in a man who likes men way. but also.......#girlboy/boygirl is a dichotomy i genuinely Get now. im like ya thats meee.....#and i fuck even heavier w androgyny than i did before going on T. i LIKE the weird in-between my voice is at rn and the more it settles.#the more im getting my higher range Back in ADDITION to the lower range i have now. im jst like wow. my power. thts hot.#like i fully consider myself nonbinary. MORE dubiously than i did before. idk it's just cool yk.#like figuring things out abt myself. and all of that shit. i feel like im growing into my gender. like a tree planting roots or smthn.#it just feels very cool and beautiful and natural and i like it a lot!#i cringe being called A Man (with the implication of being binary) as much as i do being called A Woman (w/ binary implications).#but if u call me A Man or A Woman with dubious gender intent........no ya do that. please. it's hot it's sexy it's intangible much like me.#anyways i need to go to bed đ#summer's text tag#might even fuck around and start usinf she/her again who knows not me
8 notes
·
View notes
Text
never originally drew this guy so not technically a redraw, but here's the twins' dad!
JUMP Striker (former) // Hideki Ishino
#neo toku#my art#my ocs#tokusatsu oc#mentioned in genji/strider's post that the two of them used to be called the ''gemini crickets'' before they had a falling out#SO the falling out was mostly caused by a growing rift between them after hideki established Gemini#a company meant to provide assistance and support to emerging people with what would come to be known as ''Toku powers''#but then became shadier and more of a business that handled branding and sponsorships#and financial incentives once it started to make money#which lead to hideki also threatening and intimidating potential heroes to sign with them or they'll be branded vigilantes and extremists#destroying any potential reputation they may already or could have#which is exactly what happened to genji when he walked away from gemini#ANOTHER FUN THING ALSO: gemini crickets is purposefully meant to sound like jiminy cricket#and hideki's first name can be written with characters that mean ''special'' or ''great'' and ''wood'' or ''tree''#so its kind of a pinocchio reference/parallel#anyway. hideki also raised hayato and ruriko specifically to be he and genji's successors as adults but.#that obviously didn't work out super well lmao. oopsie.
4 notes
·
View notes
Text
a song of past romance a royal / greek au gojo fic

pairing âžș suitor/king!gojo x princess!reader
summary âžș king gojo satoru of ithaca travels to sparta, seeking to win over who they say is the most beautiful mortal woman's heart. so when he sees you upon his arrival weaving under an olive tree, looking goddess-sent, he immediately loses the plot and concludes that it must be you that the tales and legends must talk about. it is not, but gojo has chosen who his queen will be. as gojo continues to break down your walls with his endless devotion and silver tongue, you must decide: will you let duty and your loved ones's expectations decide your fate, or will you choose the man who would defy even the heavens to claim you as his queen ?
warnings âžș smut, p i v sex, oral f recieving, whimpering gojo agenda <3, fluff, a big of angst if you squint, some insecurity, pining, banterTM, gojo is really whipped for reader, odypen inspired (this one's for my epic/pjo baddies), extensive greek mythology knowledge not needed, athena is tired of gojo lol, jealousy, helen is a sassy diva, not totally accurate to the lore of the illiad bc i just use the premise, mentions of children/pregnancy at the end if you squint, semi edited, art by @/yunonoaii
a/n my hyperfixation made me write this lol. you dont need to know anything about greek mythology to read this fic it's more of a period piece / royal au :3
general masterlist
You had registered the young manâs presence for quite some time now.
Ever since your beloved cousin Helenâthe most beautiful woman in the world, the kallikomos, kalliparÄios Helenâhad come of age, your palace had been plagued by an unceasing tide of suitors. Even a respite alone in the garden, in peace, was not guaranteed to you; just as the ivory haired suitor (who thought himself furitive) that had been sneaking and skirting around you for a while now, there were countless of men on the palace grounds desperate to even get a glimpse of what the countless legends and tales about Helen had described.Â
Though, you werenât jealous of your lovely cousinâyou loved her to death. But it was getting on your nerves, because you had hoped for a quiet evening relaxing under the olive tree you were sitting in. This mn, however, was different.
For some time now, the ivory-haired suitor had been skirting the edges of your sanctuary, moving as though he thought himself invisible. You could feel his gaze, sharp and intent, as you alternated between weaving and reading. His persistence should have irritated you. And yet, there was something amusing about his poor attempt at stealth.
The telltale rustle of grass betrayed him once again. You sighed, tucking a stray lock of hair behind your ear before reaching up to gather it all, baring the curve of your neck to the evening breeze.
The stalker suitor tripped with a loud thud.
You blinked. Then, sighing once more, you set down your spindle and turned. "I know youâre there," you called, unimpressed.
Silence, then a low chuckle.
When he finally stepped into the open, your disinterested gaze liftedâand promptly widened.
Tall. Broad-shouldered. The build of a warrior, yet the face of a prince. A mischievous, almost boyish charm softened the sharp lines of his features, but his striking blue eyes gleamed with something untamed.
Helen would have a field day with him. Like that one thing she said about how she looovedd versatile men, the ones that could manhandle you but also whimper. Or whatever.Â
Then, to your utter shock, he dropped to one knee, extending his hand toward you in a bold gesture of devotion. His demeanor was confident, but you saw him sporting a hue of pink on his cheeks. It was rather cute, but any feelings of fondness disappeared at his next words.
"Oâ Helenâ" the suitor began, his voice rich with reverence, "fairest of all women, whose beauty outshines even the dawnâ"
You exhaled sharply through your nose. Of course.
"âpermit me but a moment to bask in your radiance, for no mortal man could gaze upon you and remain unchangedâ"
Your fingers curled tightly around the threads of your spindle.
"âgrant me the honor ofâ"
"Try again," you cut in, your voice deceptively sweet.
The suitor paused mid-sentence, blinking up at you.
"Pardon?"
You raised an unimpressed brow, tilting your head. "If youâre going to wax poetic, you might at least direct it toward the right woman."
His lips parted, then pressed into a puzzled frown. He tilted his head, sharp blue eyes scanning your face as if trying to decipher a riddle. "But⊠you are Helen," he said slowly, as if testing the words.
You let out a short laugh, shaking your head. "Afraid not."
A pause.
His gaze flickered over you again, as if he could will you into being Helen just by staring hard enough. "Are you sure?"
You gave him a look. "I would hope I know my own name."
His brows drew together, clearly struggling to process this revelation. "But youâreâyouâre sitting under an olive tree, looking vaguely divine. Your hair caught the light just now in a way that seemed very⊠goddess-sent. You have the whole tragic air of someone who is probably devastatingly beautiful and sought after by hundreds."
You blinked, trying to fight the heat creeping up your neck. You shouldnât be affected by his bromides, for his words must be a ploy to gain back his image after offending you. "Is that supposed to be an apology?"
He squinted. "More like a logical assessment of my mistake."
You sighed. "Well, your 'logical assessment' is incorrect."
He sat back on his heels, regarding you with blatant skepticism. "I donât know," he said slowly. "I came here for Helen. Youâre here. And you're lovely. Seems like a very Helen thing to do."
You gave him a flat stare in return. "What, exist?"
"Exactly."
You rolled your eyes. "I see why they make you fight instead of think."
At that, the suitor huffed a short laugh, his earlier embarrassment giving way to something more amused, more interested. "Alright," he conceded, crossing his arms over his knee. "If you arenât Helen, then who are you?"
You leaned back against the tree, allowing yourself a small, satisfied smirk. "The woman you just proposed to by accident."
He blinked. Then groaned, dragging a hand down his face. "The gods are laughing at me."
"As they should," you replied smoothly.
To your surprise, he grinned. "That makes two of us, then," he mused, tilting his head at you. "I get the feeling you enjoy seeing men suffer."
A non committal hum from you. âMaybe, maybe not.â With that, you began weaving once more, giving him the signal that his presence and platitudes were no longer needed. Â
Yet, he remained.
You could feel his gaze lingering, heavy with an amusement that refused to wane. He had the look of someone thoroughly entertained, and that irritated you more than anything. Having conversed with him, you knew he was sharper than the average suitorâquick-witted, quicker still to recover from his blunders. Though he had not done anything to overtly suggest it, there was something about him that set him apart. It was a feelingâan air around him, something god-graced.
You paid it no mind.
He had not meant for you to be the one on the receiving end of his affection, and it would do you no good to cling to a man who had come here seeking another. He was meant to lose his mind over Helen, not take interest in you.
"Tell me your name," he said suddenly, breaking the silence.
You didn't pause in your weaving. "Why?"
A short huff of laughter. "I figure if Iâm already embarrassing myself in front of a woman, I should at least know which one."
You shot him a sidelong glance, unimpressed. "Bold of you to assume youâll be staying long enough for it to matter."
His grin deepened. "Well, now I have to stay, just to prove you wrong."
You sighed, shaking your head. "Youâre insufferable."
"Iâve been told worse," he admitted. Then, leaning forward just slightly, he added, "Though never by a woman whose name I donât know."
You lifted a brow at him, unimpressed. "And do you have a name, then, mysterious suitor?"
His expression shifted, something proud yet teasing gleaming in those striking blue eyes.
"Gojo Satoru," he declared, as if it should mean something to you. "Of Ithaca."
You hummed, as if considering. "Never heard of it."
He blinked, then scoffed. "Never heard of Ithaca?" He placed a hand over his chest in mock offense. "A land of brilliant minds, fierce warriors, and some say the most handsome men to ever walk the earthâ"
"Ah," you interjected, dry. "That explains it."
He smirked. "Explains what?"
"Why Iâve never heard of it."
A beat of silence. Then, to your dismay, he laughedâfully, unabashedly, as if youâd just handed him the greatest gift in the world.
You huffed, returning your attention to your weaving. "Now that you have a name to be proud of, surely you can be on your way."
"Not yet," he said, far too easily.
You didnât look up. "Why?"
"Because you havenât given me yours."
You didnât miss the way his voice dipped, taking on something smoother, something more coaxing. He was trying to charm it out of you, as if your name was a prize worth winning.
"Perhaps I simply donât wish to give it," you mused, feigning disinterest.
"Perhaps youâre afraid," he countered.
You did look up at that, leveling him with an unimpressed stare. "Afraid?"
He shrugged, utterly unbothered. "That if I know your name, Iâll never forget it." His gaze flickered to your hands, to the weaving that had slowed ever so slightly. "And maybe⊠neither will you."
You forced yourself to resume your work, your fingers steady despite the odd flutter in your chest. "You think too highly of yourself, Gojo Satoru of Ithaca."
"Iâm told itâs my greatest flaw," he admitted, smirking. "Wellâone of many."
You ignored him, the rhythmic motion of your weaving serving as a convenient distraction.
Gojo exhaled, as if relentingâthough something told you he was nowhere near finished with you. He rocked back on his heels, eyeing you with unconcealed interest. "Alright, mystery woman," he drawled. "If you wonât give me your name, I suppose Iâll have to keep guessing."
You didn't dignify that with a response.
But somehow, you knewâthis would not be the last time Gojo Satoru of Ithaca sought you out.
He had yet to claim your name.
No matter how cunningly he pried, no matter how sweetly he coaxed, you remained steadfast, denying him that small but significant victory.
Satoru had undoubtedly set sail for Sparta in search of a worthy challenge and a faithful brideâbut he had not expected to find both in one woman. You were a puzzle, divine and elusive, a riddle spun by the Fates themselves. And for a man who relished the thrill of unraveling mysteries, you were the most captivating enigma he had ever encountered.
Not since the day he bested the enchanted boarâa feat that had drawn Athenaâs keen eye and earned him her favorâhad he felt such a rush.
Heâd dare say you were the first one heâs felt an affinity for, despite the countless of women and candidates he had faced ever since becoming the king of Ithaca.
But before he could ponder more on the thought, he sensed a presence, tensing immediately. Heavy-set footsteps, trying to be quiet in the hallway they were both in.
Satoru crossed his arms, halted where he was. âI know youâre there.â
A laugh barked out in a deep voice. âPerceptive like they say, Gojo Satoru of Ithaca.âÂ
Satoru watched as Toji Fushiguro sauntered toward him, his movements unhurried, yet carrying the unmistakable confidence of a seasoned warrior. The man was broad-shouldered, his presence commanding, the kind of brute who could cleave a man in half with a single swing of his blade. Yet his grinâsharp, knowingâheld more calculation than recklessness.
Toji came to a stop before him, arms crossed, weight shifted onto one foot like he had all the time in the world, smirking. "No wonder Athenaâs got her eye on you."
Satoru tilted his head, feigning nonchalance. "I do have a way of impressing gods and mortals alike," he mused. "Though I imagine you didnât come all this way just to admire me."
âJust assessing the competition,â Toji hums in response, eyes still assessing Satoru. He was trying to plan three steps ahead; unfortunately for him, Satoru was ten steps ahead.Â
âThere is no competition,â comes Satoruâs cool response.Â
Toji studied Satoru for a moment, his sharp green eyes narrowing slightly. Then, with an amused scoff, he asked, "Youâre not here to fight for Helenâs hand? Are you crazy?â
Satoru let out a low chuckle, shaking his head as if the very thought was amusing. "Helen?" he echoed, letting the name roll from his tongue with deliberate care. He lifted a hand, absently brushing an imaginary speck of dust from his sleeve. "No, Iâm afraid I have no interest in her."
Toji studied him, eyes narrowing. "Sheâs the most beautiful woman in the world."
Satoru did not deny it. "So they say."
"And yet," Toji pressed, his tone skeptical, "you arenât here for her?"
Satoru finally looked at him properly, his head tilting, his gaze alight with something teasing, something unreadable. "Not in the way you are." He let the words settle between them before continuing, his tone almost indulgent. "Youâre welcome to her."
Tojiâs mouth pressed into a thin line. His instincts told him Satoru was not lying, yet something about the Ithacanâs expression, the way he carried himself, the glint in those striking blue eyesâit all made him wary. He had met many warriors in his time, but this was no brute with a sword, no hotheaded prince desperate to claim a prize.
Satoru Gojo was something else entirely.
"So what is it, then?" Toji asked, crossing his arms tighter, his voice edged with suspicion. "You sailed all this way, and for what? A festival?"
Satoruâs smirk deepened, his expression inscrutable. "Letâs just say Sparta has given me a rather interesting puzzle."
Toji scoffed but let it drop, running a hand through his dark hair. "Whatever," he muttered. "If you're really not here for Helen, then maybe you can help me."
Satoru hummed in vague interest. "Oh?"
"I intend to win her," Toji stated plainly. "But I could use an extra hand in ensuring things go my way."
Satoru did not answer immediately. Instead, he turned his gaze upward, as though admiring the vaulted ceilings of the hall, as though considering some grander design that only he could see. Then, with the ease of a man wholly unbothered by the concerns of others, he exhaled through his nose, the beginnings of a smile playing at the corners of his lips.
"Don't worry about it," he said at last, his voice rich with something almost too smooth, too assured. "Everything is already falling into place."
Toji stiffened slightly at the words, his war-honed instincts bristling at their implication. He did not like things he could not predict, and Gojo Satoru of Ithaca was proving to be as unreadable as the gods themselves.
His brows lowered. "And what the hell does that mean?"
But Satoru only laughed, turning on his heel, the faintest shimmer of torchlight catching in his silver-white hair.
"Guess youâll just have to wait and see."
And with that, he strode off, his footsteps unhurried, leaving Toji standing in the flickering shadows, frowning after him.
The great hall of Sparta was alive with the clash of bronze and the roars of men. The suitors, assembled from all corners of Greece, fought with a desperation that could only belong to those who sought glory and the hand of Helen. Blades flashed, spears thrust, and the resounding clamor of shields meeting shields filled the air like the din of battle.
Satoru Gojo of Ithaca stood at the edge of the fray, watching with a detached amusement. He had not drawn his blade, nor did he so much as feign interest in the chaos unfolding before him. Instead, his arms were loosely crossed, his posture relaxed, his sharp blue gaze studying each warrior as though they were mere pieces on a game board.
Meanwhile, you and Helen watched from the shade of a marble colonnade, seated atop a cushioned bench where servants had arranged fruits and wine for the both of you. But neither of you reached for the offerings; your gazes remained transfixed on the chaos below.
You shook your head at the ridiculous display. "It must be nice to be fought for by so many men," you murmured, resting your chin in your palm.
Helen sighed daintilyâin a way that was so typically Helen it made you smile fondlyâher hair catching the afternoon light like threads spun from the sun itself. âI will admit that it has its advantages.â
You cast her a dry look before gesturing at the men below. âHelen,â you shook your head, sighing exasperatedly, âtheyâre savages. Theyâre beating each other senselessly. Does this not disgust you?â Instead, your cousinâs beautiful lips curled up in a knowing smile, teasing you, âJealous, my dear cousin?â
âNo.â But the answer came a little too quickly, a little too defensively. The yells and violence was a display of brutishnessâbut you would not be truthful to yourself if you didnât admit that you were a bit envious of the attention your cousin was getting.Â
However, one would be a fool to confuse your sentiments for bitternessâas a princess yourself, there were no shortage of men who would be here to get you as a prize, if they did not get Helen. No shortage of men wondering who is he? Who is the man whoâll have the princess as his wife?
But unfortunately, it seemed that your father, the Spartan king Icarius, had other plans, for he would not let any man be your husband so easily. In fact, he did not wish you to marry and be taken away from him.
It was safe to say that not much male attention was on you due to this obstacle.
Helen showed no reaction to your response, but only hummed. âThis fightingâsooner or later, youâre going to be in my shoes. Youâre going to have to choose at one point, too, my dear.âÂ
âSays who?â You scoffed, turning your eyes back to the courtyard. âDo not forget Helen, these men want power. Power so they can tower above each other, place themselves above all others.â
Helen shrugged. âSo what?â
You shook your head. âSilly Helen. Wouldnât you prefer some intellectual prowess over someâŠsavage?â Â
Before Helen could reply, a shift in the air drew both of your attention back to the courtyard.
The chaos had stilled, if only for a moment. A singular figure stood at the center of it all, his ivory hair catching the wind, his stance languid yet poised.
That suitor.
The gathered nobles whispered among themselves, exchanging glances as Satoru approached the high table where the King of Sparta, Tyndareus, sat watching. The aged king stroked his beard, his expression unreadable as the Ithacan prince stopped before him, offering a bow that barely concealed the glint of mischief in his eyes.
"Your Majesty," Satoru began smoothly, "it seems we have our victor. But before we move forward, I believe there is an agreement that must be made."
The murmurs in the hall grew louder. Tyndareus narrowed his eyes slightly. "Speak, Gojo of Ithaca."
Satoru straightened, clasping his hands behind his back. "These men have come from every kingdom in Greece, each seeking the honor of marrying your daughter. Such a prize, however, comes with its dangers. Whoever wins Helenâs hand will earn not just her love but the envy and ire of the rest." He paused, letting the weight of his words settle over the hall. "If left unchecked, this jealousy could lead to war."
Tyndareusâs jaw tightened. It was a concern he himself had harbored, though few had dared to speak it outright.
Satoruâs lips curled at the edges, his voice turning smooth, persuasive. "I propose an oath. Let every suitor here, whether victorious or defeated, swear allegiance to Helenâs chosen husband. Let them vow, upon the gods, to uphold this union and defend it should any outside force seek to undo it. In doing so, Sparta ensures peace among the great kingdoms, rather than sows the seeds of discord."
Silence fell over the hall. The assembled nobles exchanged glances, the weight of the proposal heavy in the air. Even Toji, ever the warrior, raised a brow in consideration.
Tyndareus studied Satoru for a long moment, his fingers tapping against the armrest of his throne. Then, slowly, he nodded. "You are wise beyond your years, Gojo of Ithaca. Your proposal is sound. Let it be done."
A herald stepped forward, calling for the gathered suitors to kneel. One by one, they bent the knee, placing their hands over their hearts, swearing their loyalty to Helenâs future husband, binding themselves to an oath that would shape the course of history.
As the final echoes of the vow rang through the hall, Satoru turned his gaze to Toji, his smirk deepening ever so slightly. The pieces were falling into place, just as he had foreseen.
Meanwhile, in your placeâwhere you and Helen were spectating the whole event away from common sightâHelen nudged you slightly, voice hushed in interest you hadnât seen her display for any suitor yet. âDid you see thatâthe way he sweet talked my father?â Her gentle eyes widened in a way that could kill a man. âWho is he?â
You had no answer. Because, truthfully, you were wondering the same thing.
The palace gardens were quiet at this hour, bathed in the golden glow of the late afternoon sun. The scent of myrrh and olive trees lingered in the air, mixing with the faint salt of the distant sea. You sat with Helen beneath the shade of a vine-laden pergola, her back pressed against your legs as you wove your fingers through her silken strands, carefully braiding them into an intricate plait.
Helen, ever the restless one, sighed dramatically. âDo you suppose I should be flattered or terrified?â
You didnât have to ask what she meant. The courtyard had been in an uproar for hours after the suitorsâ oath had been sworn. Servants gossiped in hushed tones, and noblewomen tittered behind their veils. The future queen of Sparta had just gained the loyalty of every warrior presentâwhether she wanted it or not.
âWhy not both?â you mused, separating another section of her hair.
Helen laughed, tossing her head slightly. âIt is one thing to be the object of admiration. It is quite another to be the cause of bloodshed.â
You hummed in acknowledgment, though your fingers stilled when she spoke again, voice full of mischief.
âDid you see him?â
You resumed braiding. âWho?â
Helen turned just enough to throw you an incredulous look. âWho?â she repeated, mockingly. âAs if you do not know exactly who I speak of. Gojo Satoru of Ithaca.â
You clicked your tongue. âOh, him.â
âOh, him?â Helen scoffed. âDo not play coy, cousin. He commanded that entire courtyard without lifting a blade.â
You smiled, but she could not see you. âThat only proves he is cunning,â you pointed out, keeping your voice neutral.
âThat proves he is powerful,â Helen countered, shifting as you tugged lightly at her braid. âHe held those men in the palm of his hand.â
Barking out a laugh, you continued your work. âOr perhaps he simply enjoys hearing himself speak.â
Helen laughed, tilting her head back against your lap. âYou wound me with your dullness. Do you not see? There was something about him. He has the air of a man accustomed to winning.â
You tried not to scowl. Of course he did.
And if Helen had her eye on him, there was no chance for you.
The thought settled in your chest like a stone.
It was not as though you had entertained any hopesâbut you were not blind. The way he had looked at you in the hallways, the way he had tried to coax your name from you, the way he had seemed amused by your defiance. It had sparked something treacherous inside of you, something unspoken and foolish.
Because no man, no matter how powerful or wise, would ever choose you over Helen.
You forced your thoughts aside and tightened the braid. âAnd what of Toji Fushiguro?â you asked lightly, forcing the subject to change. âI noticed you watching him as well.â
Helen hummed, pleased with the shift in conversation. âA brute, but a striking one. I imagine he fights as well as he looks.â
You snorted. âI imagine he thinks with his fists.â
âAll the better,â Helen teased. âI should not mind a warrior who throws me over his shoulder and carries me off.â
You rolled your eyes, but you giggled regardless. âYou are insufferable.â
Helen twisted, kneeling so that you were now face to face. She reached for your hair, her fingers beginning to weave it into a braid of your own.
âYou say I am insufferable, but you have yet to deny that Gojo Satoru is worth admiring,â she murmured.
You sighed exasperatedly, looking anywhere except for your cousinâs eyes. âMust we discuss this?â
Helenâs fingers worked deftly, her expression smug. âIt is only natural to discuss the most intriguing men.â
âAnd yet I am sure you are doing it to torment me.â
âPerhaps a little.â Helenâs grin softened as she studied you. âYou would not be so opposed to him if you did not find him interesting.â
You swallowed, looking away. âThat is notââ
âYou braid my hair with such care,â she interrupted, looping another section of yours. âAnd yet, you guard your own thoughts as if I am the enemy.â
You closed your eyes briefly, inhaling the scent of lavender and sun-warmed stone. Helen had always been perceptive when she wished to be.
âThere is nothing to guard,â you murmured.
Helen merely smiled, finishing your braid with a satisfied tug.
But the knowing look in her eyes unsettled you more than any battle in the courtyard ever could.
Despite coming for Helen, Satoru continuously seeks your presence.
Your presence is intoxicating, even the smallest of glimpses of you enough to induce a feeling, one heâd liken to eating the godsâ ambrosia or drinking the finest nectar. Every time he saw you, it was passing moments in the hallways of the palace or sneaked glances while you were in the gardenâyour chin up, posture proud. Your eyes downcast as if you had no interest in the countless of men among you. The light only returned when you were weaving, or discussing with your cousin.
But Satoru had not been able to see you more than just those miniscule, fleeting momentsâit was your accursed father that kept an eye on you during dinners, his withered glare threatening all suitors, as if to remind them: Youâre here for Helen, and keep my daughter out of this, for she is not a prize you can easily win.
Little did he know Satoru loved challenges.
So he thanks the gods that an annual Spartan festival is thoroughly celebrated in the palace today.
The hall is the spitting image of revelry. Men adorn their finest tunics while women have braids of flowers and cloths, wine, fresh fruits, and meat are plentiful on all tables. Thereâs singing, thereâs dancing, and, best of all, thereâs you.
Satoruâs been observing you for quite some time now. It wouldnât be fair to call it something akin to a predator stalking his prey; no, you far from being bested by Satoru. More like a bird waiting for all the weaker mates to filter themselves out.
They were like peacocks, the men that came up to you, with the way they flared their artificial grandeur. Each time a young man sat next to you, you remained aloof, giving them nothing but a bunch of polite glances and nods. But it was clear that what ever your responses or questions were, they were nonplussed. Satoru almost felt bad for the fools if it werenât for how they were encroaching on his time to finally talk to you.
It was the opening that a particularly witless and brutish man had given himâthe guy basically leaves the seat next to you, almost in tears from whatever you had said to him, but you only blinked as Satoru approached.
Satoru slid into the recently vacated seat beside you with the grace of a man who had never been denied anything in his life. He draped an arm over the back of his chair, all effortless ease, as if he had been waiting for this moment all night.
"Whatever you said to him, Iâd like to hear it," he mused, his lips quirking in amusement. "Though I do hope you go a little easier on meâIâm rather sensitive, you see."
Your gaze flickered to him, unimpressed, though there was something almost imperceptible in your eyesâmild intrigue, perhaps.
"If you are so easily wounded, Your Majesty, then I fear you are not prepared for a Spartan womanâs words."
His grin widened. "Oh, but I live for danger."
You hummed, noncommittal, before returning your attention to the food before you. Satoru, however, found himself transfixed by the way you reached for a slice of fruit, your fingers delicate yet decisive as you brought it to your lips. You took a slow, deliberate bite, and for the first time in his life, Satoru forgot how to speak.
It was absurd, really. He had seen beautiful women eat beforeâHelen herself had a practiced elegance to itâbut there was something about you. Something about the unthinking ease with which you did it, how your lips parted just slightly before closing around the fruit, how you chewed with quiet, effortless grace, unbothered by the weight of hungry gazes that lingered on you.
For a man who had always been surrounded by beauty, who had spent his life sated and indulged, it was utterly unfair that something so simple could leave him spellbound.
Perhaps the gods were toying with him.
"Youâve been staring for quite some time," you remarked, snapping him out of his reverie.
Satoru exhaled a laugh, recovering with impressive speed. "Can you blame me? Iâm simply trying to unravel the mystery of how you managed to make that poor soul flee in tears. Iâd rather not suffer the same fate."
"Then I suggest you leave now, Your Majesty."
"Not a chance."
You sighed, though there was the ghost of amusement at the corner of your lips. "Persistent, arenât you?"
Satoru grinned. "And yet, here you are, still talking to me."
He watched as you reached for another piece of fruit, this time slower, as if testing him, watching to see if he would stare again. He nearly laughedâbecause, of course, he did.
"You truly are hopeless," you muttered, shaking your head.
"Ah, but at least I am entertaining," he countered. "And I do believe Iâve managed what those other poor fools could notâIâve kept your attention."
You opened your mouth to retort, but he was faster. "Go on, you can admit it," he teased. "I make for much better company than them, donât I?"
For a moment, you merely regarded him, expression unreadable. Then, to his absolute delight, a soft laugh escaped your lips.
It was small, barely more than an exhale, but it was real.
And gods, it was beautiful.
Satoru leaned in slightly, drinking in the sight of you as if committing it to memory.
"See?" he murmured, triumphant. "I told you Iâm quite good at this."
Your amusement lingered, but you shook your head as if in exasperation. "If you say so."
He did not say so. He knew so.
Because despite all the reasons he had come to Sparta, despite all the men who had gathered to win Helenâs hand, Satoru had found himself drawn to you instead.
And he had no intention of stopping now.
But before he could get another word in, a horn sounds, and you nod to him, somewhat apologetically. âThat is my call.â
Before he can ask, you head, skirts fluttering behind you as you move to join a growing group of young ladies in the middle. Itâs clear the gathering has captured the interest of most of the men that were previously dining.Â
You make your way down to the middle, where you arrive at your positionâitâs the one youâve occupied every year. This dance is a show of grace and lineage, a chance for the noblemen to watch and admire, to see which girl carries herself with the most poise, the most elegance, the most effortless charm.
In Gojoâs eyes, itâs easy to determine who that is.
You take your place among your cousins, hands joining as the musicians begin their melody. It is a lighthearted dance, nothing too intricate, nothing that demands much more than the ability to move in time with the others. Your skirts flutter with each step, the long strands of your braid swaying as you turn.
Itâs a girlish, lighthearted dance youâve done since you were little. You and your younger cousins giggle as you go through the motions, reveling in the attentions of the spectators that witness the lovely display with amusement and pure, wholesome adoration.
That is, until you register a special set of eyes on you.
In a specific turn along to the strum of the lyre, you turn gracefullyâa move that orients you towards Gojoâs direction. When you finally see his face and notice his presence, itâs like youâre kicked in the chest in a spar with Helen, with the way your breath leaves you.
His eyes are dark, enraptured on you, and only you. Heat creeps up your neck as you move your hands as youâre oddly flustered. His gaze is admiring and is respectful, but the intensity of itâlike longing that is toeing the line between lust and pure yearningâmakes your heart quicken in a way that you rue your accursed organ, for it to beat so traitorously. When he notices that youâre staring back at him, his jawâwhich was clenchedâloosens in a smile, but the smile isnât innocent. It spells out a promiseâone unspoken, one that curls at the edges of his lips like a secret meant for you alone. It is the kind of smile that men wear when they know something you donât, when they have already decided on something long before youâve even had the chance to argue.
It is sharp. Focused.
It traces the curve of your waist, the sway of your hips, the way your arms extend with each graceful movement.
It darkens.
Heat spreads up your neck before you can help it. The flickering torches of the hall must be to blame, or perhaps the wine in your belly, but you feel warm, too warm, and it is absurd.
Why should you care where Gojo of Ithacaâs eyes linger?
His smirk grows, and it is cocky. Infuriating, even. You snap your head away before he can see how your face burns, resuming your dance with the others, willing yourself to shake off the foolishness that has settled in your bones.
But even as you turn, even as the skirts of your dress flare and the room around you continues its celebration, you feel itâ
His eyes.
Still watching.
âAthena, I swear to you that I need her. She is my future wife!â Gojo insists, stomping his feet as he trails the goddess as if he were a child. It reminded the goddess of wisdom of when she first met himâwhen he had taken down the magic boar she had let loose, showing him of having intellect worthy of being mentored by her.Â
But Athena had meant to be a mentor to a warrior of the mindânot this lovesick, pathetic fool in front of her, like a dog whining for food. Athena sighed exasperatedly as another animal she was hunting runs away from Gojoâs sheer loudness. âEnough!â she snaps, but not unkindly. âWho is this princess you speak of, and what kind of spell has she cast on you to become this much of a fool?ïżœïżœïżœ
Gojo ignores any insults directed towards him, and instead adorns a bright smile at the mention of you. âShe is the cousin of Helen of Sparta, and the daughter of Icariusââ
Gojo is interrupted by a snort. âThe same one that swore to never marry his daughter off?â
This gives Gojo a reason to pause. He had not known this fact. âSo, how do you propose Iââ
Much to his chagrin, the w goddess is already a few steps ahead. âTo waste my time on strategy to secure a woman, Gojo, is quite preposterous.
But if you must insist on my counsel, then you shall earn it," Athena declares, turning on her heel to face him fully. Her gaze, sharp as a well-honed blade, sweeps over him, as if assessing whether he is truly worth the effort. "Icarius is a man of reason before all else. He values intellect, discipline, and above all, loyalty. If you wish to stand a chance, you must prove to me two things: one, that she is a wise woman worth of being sought after, and, two, you must prove that you are not merely another suitor blinded by beauty."
Gojo grins, clearly pushing his luck. "So you will help me?"
Athena exhales, the very picture of divine suffering. "I will not gift you the answer, but I will grant you the means to find it yourself."
"Which is just a long-winded way of saying you will help me." He nods sagely, as if he has unraveled the mysteries of Olympus itself.
Athena rubs her temple. "I should have let the boar trample you."
Gojo only laughs, stepping in line beside her as they weave through the woods. His mind is already turning, piecing together what little he knows of Icarius, of you, and of what he must do to win. Because one thing is certainâhe will win.
Icarius may have sworn never to wed you off, but Gojo Satoru has never been one to abide by the rules.
You do not want to be here.
All you simply wanted was time in your sanctuary, your olive tree. It remained hidden in the royal gardens, so itâs a wonder that Gojo of Ithaca had found you. Of course, you would have to be a fool to not admit that these suitorsâ wit paled in comparison to that white-haired young king. Such as this one, for example.
âMy lady, I could not help but notice your fair disposition when I looked upon you,â the suitor grins, his teeth bared like a dog catching scent of a meal. It is not a pleasant expression. You do not react, save for clutching your weaving tighter to your chest. He steps closer, and you take measured care not to recoil, though the instinct is strong. âMay you grant me your nameââ
âI would have to apologize,â you cut him, already turning away. âMy father does notââ
Youâre stopped by a harsh grip on your wrist, and you wrench your gaze back to the suitor in shock.Â
"You wound me, my lady," the man says, still smiling as if this was amusing. As if he had power over you. Physical power, you suppose, but clearly this man was lacking in intellect, to not have noticed his presence. "You have been so cold to me, and Iâ"
He does not notice the shadow behind him.
âAh,â a voice interjects, smooth, easy. âThatâs no way to hold a ladyâs hand, is it?â
The grip on your wrist slackens, but another takes its placeâlight, barely a touch.
Gojo.
The suitorâs face twists in confusion, but it quickly shifts to pain as Gojo applies the smallest pressure to his wrist.
âYouââ
âShe said no,â Gojo interrupts breezily. âAnd Iâd hate to make a scene, so do us all a favor and leave before I decide to break something, yeah?â
With an effortless flick of his hand, the suitor stumbles back, shaking out his wrist as if burned.
Gojo does not spare him another glance. His attention is on you.
âAre you alright?â His voice is softer now, no teasing lilt, no easy arrogance.
You hesitate, unsettled.
âI was handling it,â you say, though it does not come out as firm as you would like.
Gojo only hums, something that sounds like, I know you could, but youâre distracted by his eyes drifting down to your wrist, where a faint mark has already begun to bloom.
His gaze darkens, but you hurry to assure him. âIâll bandage this, itâs not a big woundââ
He interrupts you. âNo need,â gently holds your shoulder, as if imploring you to follow him into the direction heâs started to walk, âIâll do it myself.â
âThatâs notââ
âLook.â He shoots you a look, but it is not unkind nor patronizing. You realize belatedly that it has set your heart aflutter. âI trust that you know how to bandage your wound. But I have had countless like it, so you are with a skilled master in healing. And who knows which suitors may find you on your journey to the physician?
You purse your lips, biting back a retort but failing. âAnd arenât you one of the said suitors?â
His lips pull back in an amused smile, and you notice his hand is still resting lightly on your shoulder. âI think we both know Iâm different.â You bite back a smile.
âOh, really?â you remark dryly, but the look in your eyes is anything but. âAnd how did Your Majesty acquire the title of being different?â
His thumb brushes, just barely, against the fabric of your sleeve before he withdraws his hand entirely, as if sensing that heâs lingered too long. But his smirk remains, insufferable as ever.
âFor one, I donât make a habit of forcing myself upon unwilling women,â Gojo remarks, a pointed edge to his otherwise careless tone. âAnd for anotherâŠâ He tilts his head, considering you. âI daresay I might be infatuated in a way theyâor youâcouldnât comprehend.â
Your breath catches, but you recover quickly, huffing as you turn away. âAll these sweet nothings. Helen will love you.â
Gojo chuckles, stepping ahead of you as he leads the way. âYet she is not the one I am after.â
You pause. Soak in his words. Outwardly, you roll your eyes and follow him for you were at a lack of words, but inside Poseidonâs storm rages inside you at his words, creating a ferocious whirlpool of conflicting feelings.
His strides are long and easy, as if he belongs wherever he walks, and yet, he slows his pace just enough for you to keep up. The gesture is not lost on you.
The physicianâs chamber is quiet when you arrive, save for the distant chatter of servants outside. Gojo does not call for assistance. He merely gestures for you to sit, pulling out a small cloth and a bowl of water, his movements easy and practiced.
âYouâve done this before,â you murmur as he kneels before you, pressing the damp cloth against your wrist.
His smile is unreadable. âI am a warrior, am I not?â
The cold seeps into your skin, making you shiver. Gojo notices. His touch, for all his bravado, is unbearably gentle. You do not know what to make of it.
âYouâll bruise,â he says softly, fingers skimming over the faint marks. âDoes it hurt?â
You swallow. âNo.â
A lie.
Gojoâs gaze flickers up to yours, and for the first time, there is no teasing in his expressionâonly something quiet and knowing, something that makes your heart betray you in its weakness.
For a moment, you both fall into a silence, and, to avoid his gaze, you go back to clutching at your hand and staring at it, as if thereâs something really intriguing about it. Then, he speaks up. âWant to play?â
You bring your gaze back to him, caught off guard. âWhat?â
He cocks his head in a direction to which you face, and there you see it: a game board. One to play petteia.Â
You turn back at him, blinking. âYou play petteia?â
Gojo grins, stretching out with a lazy ease that only makes you more suspicious. As if he has ulterior motives to this. âWhat, surprised? Strategy games are a warriorâs pastime.â
You squint him. That line of reasoning was rather true, you suppose. Something told youâsomething being the way he convinced Helenâs father so easily, how he always seemed three, no, six steps aheadâthat he was no normal warrior, no normal brute. Huffing, you remark offhandedly, âI suppose a true warrior does sharpen his mind as well as his sword. Itâs a pity that youâll be losing today. To me.â
His smile deepens, and it makes you notice small indents in his cheeks as a result, and the way thereâs a rosy pink hue on his cheeks, as if heâs excited to see what you can do. âThen by all means, put me to shame.â
You settle onto the floor, determined, as he arranges the pieces between you. The rules are simple enoughâcapture your opponentâs pieces by flanking them on either sideâbut the way Gojo moves is anything but. He plays with an insufferable sort of confidence, shifting his pieces with flicks of his fingers, as if the game is already his to win.
Until it isnât, obviously.
He frowns when the click of stone dropped onto the board sounds. Youâve cut off his advancing soldier, trapping it neatly between two of your own.
âHuh,â he muses, tapping his chin. He stares at the board, mind no doubt going at a speed unfathomable to most. His eyes flick rapidly, as if assessing the position of all the stone and calculating all the possible moves and permutations that can salvage him out of the situation youâve created for him. You maintain your poker face, but inside, you want to smile. You had calculated those said combinations a few steps ago, and itâd be really hard to get out of this. Then, comes out a âThat was⊠unexpected.â
You smile sweetly. âWhatâs wrong? Did the great King of Ithaca not anticipate that?â
Gojo exhales, dragging a hand through his hair while huffing out a laught. âYouâre quite ruthless, arenât you?â
âIâm practical,â you correct, claiming another of his pieces. âAnd good at this game.â
Gojo squints at the board, as if trying to decipher where exactly he went wrong. âYou do know youâre supposed to let me win, right? My pride is fragile.â
âI wasnât aware kings had fragile pride.â
âYou wound me, my lady.â He presses a hand to his chest, but his movements are distracted as he moves another pieceâonly for you to immediately trap it.
His head snaps up. âWaitââ
You make your final move, effortlessly cornering his last few soldiers.
Silence.
Gojo blinks at the board.
You clear your throat. âDo you need a moment to process this?â
Slowly, he leans back, shaking his head with something close to awe. âYou know, I was planning to go easy on you, but I donât think that would have helped.â
You grin, triumphant. âIâll take that as an admission of defeat.â
Gojo exhales through his nose, then tilts his head at you, a glint of something unreadable in his eyes.
âYouâre dangerous,â he says, and youâre not quite sure if itâs a compliment or a warning.
âMaybe to an overconfident king who underestimates his opponent.â
That urges out a laugh from him, and he shakes his head. âTrust me, I was not underestimating you. It seemed that I had overestimated myself.â
Before you can respond, Gojo leans forward, propping his chin on his hand as he watches you with something unsettlingly thoughtful.
You donât trust that look.
âWhat?â you ask warily.
He hums. âJust thinking.â
âThatâs a dangerous pastime for you.â
Gojo presses a hand over his chest, as if wounded. âCruel. After I iced your wrist and let you absolutely demolish me at petteia, this is the thanks I get?â
âYou act as if I owe you something.â
His smirk returns, slow and smug. âWell, since you mention itâŠâ
You narrow your eyes. âNo.â
âYou didnât even hear me out.â
âI know you well enough to predict whatever absurd request youâre about to make.â
Gojo lets out a dramatic sigh, tilting his head back. âAnd here I was, about to propose something completely reasonable. A fair exchange.â
You arch a brow. âFair?â
He nods, all feigned seriousness. âSee, I let you win.â
âYou most certainly did not.â
âAnd I helped with your wrist.â
Your lips press into a line. âWhich you did of your own volition.â
Gojo ignores this. âSo, as a completely justified request, I think you should let me meet you in the royal gardens.â
You blink. His words hang in the air between you, a casual proposition that somehow carries more weight than it should.
âThe gardens?â
He nods. âBy the olive tree at sunset. The one where we met.â
âWhy?â
Groaning, he lounges back, pushing his feet out while doing the motion. It makes his long legs come closer to where yours are opposite from him, so much that you can feel their heat. Not direct contact, but there. âHave I not made my advances clear by now?â He moves to a sitting position, a more serious look in his eyes as he earnestly looks at you, but you find it hardâdespite your usual dry disposition towards suitorsâto maintain eye contact, so you opt to look at your hands instead as his next words strike blows to your treacherous heart.
 âYour Highness, I am here for you. You are far wittier than meâI have things to learn from you. You have bewitched me, for I did not know it was possible for a lady to consume my every waking thoughts in such a violent way as you have. You may think me a stranger, and you may think me one of the many foolish suitors here for Miss Helenâs hand, but I will make you fall in love with me. I will show you that despite my pride, I will be a kind and gentle husband.â He exhales, as if steadying himself, but his eyes remain fixed on you. There is no jest in them, no trace of the arrogance he so often wears like armor. Only something raw.
âAnd I will absolutely not leave this city until you come back to me in my kingdom as the Queen of Ithaca. It may require god-like skill to convince your father to marry meâbut I am nothing if not persistent.â
Before you can even begin to form a responseâbefore you can push past the breath lodged in your throat, the furious pounding in your chestâthereâs a voice.
"There you are!"
Helen.
You turn just as she strides toward you, golden as ever, a vision of effortless beauty. She doesnât seem to have heard a word of what was just spoken, too preoccupied with her own delight at having found you.
"Iâve been looking everywhere," she sighs, linking her arm through yours before glancing at Gojo, who, for once, remains uncharacteristically silent. Her eyes flick between the two of you, and then she hums. "I hope I wasnât interrupting anything?"
Gojo recovers faster than you do. "Not at all, Your Highness," he says smoothly, a practiced smile slipping into place. "I was simply getting to know your cousin better."
Helen gives him a flirtatious smile, but nevertheless turns to you, frowning. âAnd why are you at the physicianâs?â
You feel Gojoâs eyes follow your movements as you shake your head and rise, walking towards Helen. âAn unruly suitor. It was a light bruise, it is not a great matterââ
âA bruise?!â
âCome with me,â you hissed, waving her along so she did not question further. It seemed that the room was very warm, for you felt a heat creep up your neck the longer Gojoâs eyes unequivocally stayed on you.Â
Helen blinked, at a loss for words, no doubt pondering why you both were leaving Gojoâs presence so readily. âBut His Majestyââ
âCousin,â you snapped, âdid you not have a reason to be looking for me?â
Helen blinks, momentarily distracted. Then, as if something suddenly occurs to her, she brightens.
âOh! Yes, Father wanted to see you.â
You exhale, relievedâonly for it to be short-lived, because she doesnât move.
She remains rooted in place, glancing back at Gojo with a look that is far too amused for your liking. The flirtatious smile returns, softer now, more intrigued.
âBut surely,â she muses, tilting her head, âyou wouldnât mind if I stayed a moment longer? Itâs not often one meets a man as charming as His Majesty of Ithaca.â
You narrow your eyes. âHelen.â
âWhat?â she says, all innocence. âWeâre simply talking.â
You glance at Gojo, expecting him to look insufferably pleased, but instead, heâs watching you. Not Helen. You tear your gaze away.
Itâs only once the two of you are walking through the halls, out of earshot, that Helen sighs, linking your arms again.
âHeâs quite something, isnât he?â she murmurs.
You keep your eyes ahead. âPerhaps. A bit arrogant, though.â
âHeâs clever,â she corrects, then gives you a knowing look. âAnd you like him.â
You scoff, though the heat on your skin betrays you. âI do not.â
Helen only laughs, shaking her head. âDearest cousin,â she sighs, âI have seen you endure the most persistent suitors with all the warmth of an ice-cold river. And yet, here you are, playing petteia with him, letting him tend to your wounds.â
You do not have an answer to that.
And Helen does not press further. She only smiles wistfully to herself, as if she already knows how this story will end.
âŠ
The halls are silent at this hour, save for the whisper of your steps against the cool stone. You keep to the shadows, careful, quiet. If anyone were to see you like thisâwrapped in a cloak, a weaver in hand, slipping through the corridors like a thief in the nightâthere would be whispers by morning.
But then again, what whispers have ever concerned you?
The thought does not comfort you as much as it should.
Your grip tightens around the weaver, its familiar weight grounding. You brought it with you on the off chance that Gojo, like most men, proves unreliable. You have no reason to believe he will come; his feelings for you could be temporary lust, a second option in case his primary oneâHelenâfails. No reason to have entertained his invitation at all. And yet, you go.
You cannot say why.
A foolish impulse, perhaps. Or simple curiosity. Or maybeâ
You push the thought away, focusing instead on the memory that surfaces unbidden.
A conversation with your father, just today while you dined.
You had spoken of Helenâs upcoming wedding of the foreign princes and warriors who sought her hand, of the future that awaited her.
Your father had frowned, the lines of his face deepening. âIt is dangerous,â he had said, quiet but firm. âTo entrust my daughter to a man who cannot ensure her well-being.â
You had smiled then, easy and unbothered, as if his words did not touch something in you. âIt is not you he must convince.â
He had looked at you for a long moment, something unreadable in his gaze, but ended up remarking offhandedly, as if reminding you. âI do not want you to go far from me.â
And you, still smiling, had said nothing at all.
Now, in the solitude of the night, you are no longer smiling.
You know your fatherâs concern is not unfounded. It is not simply Helenâs future that weighs on himâit is yours.
But it is a strange thing, the way his words linger, how they press against you, heavy and quiet. Not as a warning. Not as a burden. But as something else. Something you cannot yet name.
You reach the courtyard, the olive tree standing tall against the night sky behind a series of trees. You exhale, slow and steady, before walking to reach it, weaver in hand.
If he comes, he comes.
And if notâ
Well. You were never the kind to wait idly for a man.
But before you could go on your endless mental tirade of how despicable the male species were, you heard a voice. Gojoâs voice in particular.
Walking closer and closerâto where your olive tree was but not where you were visible, trees providing coverageâyou noticed him talking to someone in a hushed, yet excited tone. You use the window of sight allowed by the gap between the treesâ leaves to see him, standing with an owl on his forearm. Itâs turned to him, as if paying attention, although exasperatedly, to him while he stands tall as ever, his foot tapping impatiently against the grass.
You hesitate, watching as the owl blinks at him, as if listening, considering his words.
And then it notices you. Its, well, owlish eyes are wide as they lock in on your figure.
With a quiet rustle of feathers, it takes flight, disappearing into the night.
Gojo turns, following its path before his gaze lands on you.
âYou scared my friend away,â he says, as if this is the most natural thing in the world.
You blink at him. âYou were talking to an owl.â
He shrugs, as if this too is perfectly reasonable. âSheâs a good listener. A little judgmental, though.â
You give him a look, unimpressed. âI see youâve finally found an audience that suits you.â
His lips curve into a slow smile. âAnd yet, here you are.â
You huff, settling onto one of the smooth stones beneath the tree. âI didnât come for your company.â You hold up the weaver in your hands, as if that alone is proof of your intentions. âI came to pass the time.â
âAh,â he drawls, stepping closer, hands slipping into the folds of his cloak. âAnd yet, youâre talking to me instead.â
You narrow your eyes at him, but he only grins, triumphant.
âTell me,â he muses, dropping down beside you. âWere you hopingâor predicting, with that fast mind of yoursâI wouldnât come?â
You donât answer right away, fingers idly threading the weaver. The night air is cool, the scent of olives and earth thick around you.
âWould it have mattered?â you ask at last, voice light, careless.
Gojo watches you, and for a moment, he does not answer either.
Then, quietly, as if confessing something neither of you are ready to name, he says, âYes.â
You inhale slowly, fingers stilling on the weaver as his answer settles between you.
Yes.
It wasnât spoken in jest, nor with the easy arrogance he so often wielded. Instead, it was quieter, more certainâlike an unshakable truth, unburdened by expectation.
You donât know what to make of it.
You cast him a glance from the corner of your eye. Heâs sitting close but not too close, his long legs stretched out before him, arms resting lazily over his knees. His usual grin is absent, replaced by something unreadable, something you cannot name.
The weight of his gaze is different now. Not teasing, not searching for amusementâbut waiting.
You look away first.
Your fingers resume their slow, practiced work, weaving delicate patterns into the fabric, though your thoughts are anything but orderly.
âWhy are you here?â you ask, voice softer than you intend.
A beat passes before he answers.
âBecause you are.â
You swallow.
He leans back onto his hands, tilting his head toward the night sky, moonlight catching in the pale strands of his hair. It makes him look otherworldly, like a figure carved from mythâtoo beautiful, too untouchable.
âIâm not Helen,â you say after a moment, unsure why the words leave your lips. âYou have nothing to gain from this.â
Gojo exhales, a quiet sound, but when he looks at you again, there is something almost amused in his expressionâtouched with something softer, something more patient.
âDo you think I speak to owls for political gain?â
You huff, trying to ignore the warmth threatening to creep up your neck. âI think you do most things for your own amusement.â
He hums, as if considering that. âYou wound me.â
âI doubt that,â you mutter, eyes fixed on your work.
And yetâhis fingers twitch where they rest against the stone. Itâs small, barely noticeable, but your eyes catch it, and you wonder.
Does he want to reach for you?
The thought unsettles you more than it should.
He exhales again, then shifts, leaning forward to rest his arms on his knees, expression thoughtful. âYou know,â he muses, âI had a whole speech planned.â
You raise a brow. âOh?â
âSomething about how I was drawn to you the way sailors are drawn to sirens. That you, unlike any other, have made me question things I thought I knew.â He looks down at his knees, lips pulling in a mischievous smile. âBut with you, I doubt a night of spilling sweet nothings or perhapsâŠother things would have swayed you.â
Your fingers still.
âBut I think Iâve changed my mind,â he continues, tilting his head. âI think Iâd rather just talk to you.â
You stare at him, caught somewhere between wariness and something dangerously close to wonder.
And then, before you can stop yourself, you ask, âWhat would you have said next?â
His lips twitch, and for the first time tonight, there is mischief in his gaze again. âWouldnât you like to know?â
You roll your eyes, but the moment has shifted, lighter now, though something unnamed still lingers beneath it.
âKeep your secrets, then,â you mutter, returning to your weaving.
âYou wound me,â Gojo says again, pressing a hand to his chest as if truly affronted. âHere I am, spilling my heart, and you deny me even a scrap of sentiment.â
You let out a quiet scoff, keeping your focus on your weaving. âPerhaps if your words werenât so dramatic, Iâd be inclined to believe them.â
Gojo gasps. âDramatic?â He leans closer, an almost boyish grin tugging at his lips. âMy lady, I am nothing if not a man of sincerity.â
âOh? So that speech about sirens wasnât an embellishment?â
âNot at all.â He sighs, as if suffering under some great burden. âI wake in the morning thinking of you, I lay my head at night wondering if youâve thought of me at all. Itâs agony, truly.â
You roll your eyes, but your lips betray you, twitching into something dangerously close to a smile. âThat sounds more like a malady than love.â
âAh, but love is a sickness, is it not?â He exhales dramatically. âAnd you, my lady, have made a very ill man of me.â
Despite yourself, a laugh escapesâlight, unguarded, like something slipping past your defenses before you can catch it.
And thenâsilence.
You glance at him, and find him already watching you.
His usual mischief is gone, replaced by something softer, something wholly unprepared. His breath is caught somewhere between his ribs, his lips slightly parted as if the sight of your laughter has stolen the air from him.
And thenâ
A blush, unmistakable even in the moonlight.
Your heart stutters.
Oh.
For the first time, you allow yourself to study him properly. The sharp angles of his jaw, the elegant bridge of his nose, the vivid eyes that hold yours so intently.
He is very handsome.
The thought settles somewhere unexpected, like an admission youâve been avoiding.
Before you can dwell on it, something light catches against your shoulderâa drifting leaf, caught in the folds of your garment.
Gojo moves before you can react.
His fingers brush against the fabric near your collarbone, and then linger, featherlight and warm, as he pulls the leaf free. The moment stretchesâlonger than it should, charged with something unspeakable.
You feel his breath before you see him move, close enough now that the space between you is barely a whisper.
His hand, now free of its task, hesitatesâbefore it trails downward, catching yours in his grasp.
He doesnât say anything, doesnât try to fill the moment with jest. His thumb traces the back of your hand, slow and absentminded, as if memorizing the shape of you.
Your own breath falters.
His breath is warm in the cool night air, his proximity setting something taut beneath your ribs. You are no stranger to flirtation, nor to men who think they can win you with pretty words, but GojoâGojo is different.
Perhaps itâs the way he looks at you now, his usual mischief tempered by something quieter. Or perhaps itâs the fact that, despite his arrogance, despite his clever tongue and tireless persistence, he does not presume to take.
He waits.
A dangerous thing, because it gives you time to notice the way his fingers twitch slightly against the fabric of your sleeve, the way his lips part as if tasting the words before speaking them.
âYouâre staring,â he murmurs, tilting his head.
You arch a brow, feigning indifference despite the heat pooling low in your stomach. âAm I?â
His lips curve. âShould I be flattered?â
You hum, as if considering it. âIâm only making observations.â
âOh?â He steps just a fraction closer, his voice dipping. âAnd what have you observed, my lady?â
âThat you blush quite easily,â you say smoothly, pleased when the faint flush creeps further up his neck. âThat despite your grand declarations, you are, in fact, a little shy.â
Gojo lets out a quiet laugh, shaking his head. âShy? My lady, you wound me.â
âDo I?â You tilt your chin up slightly, your voice softer now, your hand still in his.
His gaze flickers to your lips.
Your breath catches, just for a moment.
And thenâ
His hand moves, fingers brushing along the curve of your jaw before settling at the nape of your neck, his touch deliberate, careful. A question, waiting for an answer.
You donât grant him wordsâonly the tilt of your head, the briefest lean forward.
It is all the invitation he needs.
He kisses you like a secret, like something to be savoredâslow at first, testing, before he grows bolder. His other hand finds your waist, pulling you just a little closer, and warmth floods through you, seeping into your bones.
The world is silent save for the soft hitch of breath, the faint rustle of fabric as he deepens the kiss, as you allow yourself to press into him, fingers curling into the front of his tunic.
For a man who never stops talking, he is utterly wordless now.Â
When you wake up next in the morning, it is grumpy and tired. Not only were you up late into the night, talking to andâŠkissing Gojo of Ithaca, or rather, Satoru (while you were drunk on each other, he had convinced you to call him Satoru), but the sound of Helenâs squealing made your head ring, putting an unbearable pressure onto them.
âHelen!â you scold her, throwing a spare pillow at her. She easily dodges while you sit up in the bed, half-heartedly rubbing your eyes to wipe the sleep from them. As she throws herself onto the foot of the bed, you notice and hear the pitter patter of rain, casting a somber gray light in your bedroom that is occasionally interrupted by Zeusâs thunder, as if the god was angered or sharing a premonition.Â
Shaking off the thought, you scowl at your cousin, whoâs excitedly prattling about things you still have yet to comprehend. âSlow down! Tell me, without spewing all your words at once.â
âFather gave me permission to marry!â she squealed, jumping on you and hugging you closely. She seemed happy, and you loved your cousin very much, even if you did not show it much. Pure affection permeates your countenance, as she continues. âYou know Iâve always wanted to marry him, with his big arms and all. He could totally manhandle me, but you knoooww I love the ones that can whimperââ
âOh my god,â you groan, covering your ears as if scandalized (youâve said much worse to her), but you grin regardless. âWho is the man that you have chosen?â
âWell,â she laughs, flipping her hair off her shoulder, âGojo of Ithaca is to be my husband, of course.â
Your heart drops to your stomach.
What she says next seems to blur together, not registering because you are shocked, your world almost tilted.
Gojo of Ithaca is to be my husband, of course.
It is then you realize belatedly that Helen seems to be calling out to you, and what you notice the most out of anything on her face is the soft smile she has on her face. One that shows that she is fond of Satoru Gojo, that she has affection for him. And who are youâthe girl whose father doesnât wish for her to marry, one that isnât to be promisedâtake that away from Helen, from him?
Gojo has made it clear that he is not here for Helenâbut wouldnât it be better for him and his kingdom (which you discovered last night that he cares so dearly for) for him to marry Helen? A beautiful queen and a wise king.Â
What a match.
You swallow, throat suddenly dry, but you manage a smileâstrained, weak, but a smile nonetheless.
âHelen,â you begin, voice steady despite the storm brewing inside you, âare you certain?â
âOf course!â she beams, oblivious to the way your fingers tighten in the fabric of your bedding. âFather said Gojo has yet to ask officially, but he will, I know it. And why wouldnât he? A match like thisâitâs fate.â
Fate.
What cruel irony.
You remember last nightâGojoâs hands warm against your skin, his laughter pressed against your lips, the way he had murmured your name like a vow.
And yetâ
You look at Helen, golden and radiant even in the gray morning light, her eyes alight with genuine happiness. You love her, truly, and have since childhood. She has always had her pick of men, but there was something softer in the way she spoke of Satoru just now.
The soft smile, the dreamy lilt to her voice.
She wants this.
And what of you?
Your chest aches, but you laugh, the sound lighter than it should be. âYou sound quite taken with him.â
âI am,â she beams, watching you. âHeâs gorgeous! Charming, too. He told me last night that he thinks my eyes are like the sea at sunrise.â
Your stomach twists and it seems that the panic overwhelms you because all you can manage to do is swallow and nod. âWell,â you look at her with a tight smile, âI congratulate you. Let us discuss this matter further over breakfast.â She smiles and squeezes your upper arm in a goodbye, and the touch of it burns.
You donât ever make it to breakfast that day.
It continues raining that day, and itâs quite appropriate for how youâre feeling. The feeling of melancholy permeates the air around you as you lay in bed, staring at the ceiling. Usually, you occupy your time by reading or, more likely, weaving, but you couldnât muster the energy to find interest in that either.
Over a man. What a shame.
You were not one to lie idleâyou were constantly praised as a princess wise beyond her years, and it would be wise, in this situation, to move on. Because the man you had grown feelings for is now engaged to your cousin, or, at least, your cousin intends to be engaged with him. And it would be wiser to let it happen, for Helenâs happiness was your happiness.
Sighing, you stuff your face into your pillow and groan, muffled by the linen fabric of your seats. You then decide grudgingly that if youâre not going to leave your room at all, it may be best to shed yourself of your clothing and lay comfortably in your loincloth and mamillare.
But right as you put your hand on your clothing to strip yourself, you hear a noise.Â
The sound comes againâa sharp, rhythmic tap-tap-tap, just barely audible over the rain. You freeze, fingers still curled around the fabric of your chiton, half-peeled from your shoulder. At first, you think it might be a stray branch scraping against the stone, wind-tossed by the storm. But then it happens againâmore deliberate this time, insistent.
Then, looking at the new objects strewn across your balcony, you realize itâs not branchesâitâs pebbles.
You scowl, tying your garments hastily before moving toward the balcony. The rain is gentler now, more mist than storm, clinging to the stone and silvering the world beyond. You grip the railing and peer downâ
And there he is.
Satoru.
Drenched from head to toe, hair plastered to his forehead, a frown curving his lips as he concentrates on where heâs going to throw his pebble next. His stance seems urgent, but youâre so caught up on the fact that heâs here, as if he isnât supposed to be engaged to Helen or be subjected to whatever congratulatory round of alcohol men bestowed upon each other after securing the most beautiful woman alive.
Your heart stutters.
You pull back immediately, breath catching in your throat. You shouldnât have come to the balcony. You shouldnât be looking at him, shouldnât be thinking about this morning when Helenâs voice still lingers in your earsâGojo of Ithaca is to be my husband, of course.
The pebble strikes the stone beside you.
âI know youâre up there,â Gojo calls, tone indecipherable. âAre you really going to ignore me? After all weâve been through?â
You swallow and your voice trembles when you say, âGo away.â
His resulting laughter sounds betrayed, hurt. âYou donât mean that.â
âSatoru,â and you donât know if itâs a plea or a warning. His head tilts, an anguished look on his face as he closes his eyes and sighs.
âYou wound me,â he huffs out a pained laugh, âAfter all, I run the risk of sickness just to see you and tell you that you believe wrong.â
Something is created in you, then. Something dangerous like hope. âWhat?â
But instead of answering, Gojo crouches, then, in one smooth motion, leaps up, catching the edge of the balcony with ease. You barely have time to react before heâs pulling himself over the railing, stepping onto solid ground with practiced grace.
You stumble back, eyes wide. âI told you not to come up.â
âAnd when have I ever listened?â
Thereâs something in the way he looks at you thenâan intensity you arenât prepared for. The air between you is charged, thick with something unspoken, something far too dangerous to name.
He takes a step forward. âI thought you were smarter than this.â
You blink, startled. âExcuse me?â
Gojo exhales, running a hand through his damp hair. âWhy would you ever think it would be Helen?â
Your stomach lurches. âShe saidââ
âShe assumed,â he corrects, cutting you off. âBut I did not accept her. And you let her do that.â His voice drops lower, softer, a stark contrast to the teasing lilt he so often wields. âDo you truly think so little of me?â
You donât answer. You canât. Because if you do, it will come spilling outâthe hope you tried to bury, the ache that settled in your chest the moment Helen uttered those words.
He moves closer, and you donât stop him.
âPrincess,â you can see his ivory lashes with how close he is, his face covered in raindrops, âfor how wise you are, you seem to not have caught on. What animal is the emblem of Athena?â
Blinking, youâre taken aback by the sudden quizzing. âOwl, what about itââ
Oh.
He sees the realization dawn over your face, and now his tense expression melts into a bittersweet smile. âThe goddess of wisdom has been my companion ever since I was a child, helping me attain whatever I needed the most. Whether it be to gain the knowledge one must have to be worthy of being king, or,â he inhales sharply, vibrant eyes scanning over your face vulnerably, âto gain the power to be able to make the wisest, wittiest, funniest, and most beautiful girl Iâve ever known my queen.
âAfter all, I have my witâadd a little of godlike power, and even I could defeat your father. Respectfully,â he adds quickly. He looks anxious you realize, as if he is about to make a risky move, a big ask. Something heâs been anxious to ask, but scared to. His eyes are still scanning you and his hands twitch at his side as he says, âI hesitate to make this decision, to ask you still after knowing the true nature of my desire for youââ
âAsk me what?â
His eyes are fixed on you, and you think that both of your hearts are beating very, very fast at the moment. âWhat do you think, princess?â
The silence that falls is loaded, heavy, and laden with hesitation. Itâs as if a vice has caged its way through your heart, squeezing and squeezing until all the things youâve left unsaid threaten to spill out. Things like I donât want you to marry my cousin. Or yet, even worse, I want you to marry me. âI would not want to throw out my guesses, Satoru,â you instead opt to say, voice soft. âThings like this must be said directly, to not leave any confusion or misunderstandings.â
His jaw tightens, his breath coming harder as he stares at you, something raw and dangerous flickering in his eyes. âI agree. These things should never be left unsaid.â His voice is low, almost seething, but not with angerâno, this is something else entirely, something desperate. âI love you.â The words are unshakable, like a vow. âAnd I refuse to sit here and pretend my thoughts of you are anything less than ruinous. I dream of you in ways no other man is allowed to, ways that would send me to Hades with a smile on my lips. You have bewitched my soul, stolen the breath from my body, and most dangerouslyâyou have claimed my mind.â His voice drops, softer now, but no less intense. âI do not know how to make you believe me, only that I would sooner challenge the gods themselves than let you slip through my fingers. The world could promise me tens of Helen, but there is only one woman I would ever choose.â His hand finds yours, fingers tightening, as his next words fall like an oath.
âYou.â
Your breath stutters, throat tightening as his fingers tighten over yours. His touch is searing, as if the gods themselves have set him aflame, and yet you cannot pull awayâyou do not want to pull away.
âSatoruââ His name slips from your lips like a prayer, and he swears under his breath, his free hand coming up to cradle your jaw, thumb pressing just below your lips, as if he is fighting the urge to kiss you.
âI would tear down Olympus itself if it meant keeping you,â he murmurs, his breath warm against your cheek. âI would make war with the gods, call upon Athena to guide my spear, and spill the blood of any man foolish enough to think they could take you from me.â His voice is rough, almost a growl, and you swear your knees would give way if not for the way he holds you now, as though letting go would be his ruin.
It is reckless, to let yourself lean into him, to let your fingers curl into the fabric of his damp chiton as though you could anchor yourself to him. But he is an anchorâpulling you into something deep, something dangerous, something you know you will not escape from unscathed.
His nose brushes yours, his lips so close that you feel his every breath, his every hesitation. But you see the war in his eyes, the battle between restraint and desire, and for once, you decide to let yourself be selfish.
So you whisper, âThen prove it.â
And that is all it takes for him to break.
His lips crash against yours, urgent and claiming, as if to kiss you any softer would be to deny himself the air he breathes. He groans as your hands tangle in his hair, your body pressing flush against his, his own hands no longer gentle but gripping, desperate, possessive. His teeth graze your bottom lip before he deepens the kiss, one hand trailing lower, pressing against the curve of your waist, then lower stillâ
Thunder crackles, as you gasp out his name. He pulls you both apart, looking anguished as if heâs fighting the urge to keep touching you, to make you moan out his name. Realizing this, you grab his hands and put them on yourself. âMy love,â you say, tenderly, and you see how his pupils dilate in response, âyou may touch meââ
âAre you sure? For if you say that, I may not be able to stop myself from indulging. Because I will take and take, until you can give me no more.â The way he says it, uncharacteristically serious and brows furrowed, makes you heat up even more, dizzy with lust and your pent up longing for the man.
But your response stays the same, paired with a firm nod. âI am surâmmmph.â
He smothers you with his lips before you can finish, cupping your jaw until his hands start to move downwards. They move, tracing the planes of your body, and they are relentless in their explorationâthey grab you possessively, pushing you closer and closer to him until his hands are below your thighs. Satoru maneuvers you until your legs are straddling his waist so that he can pick you up and carry you to your bed.
After he throws you down like carrying you poses to him as much of a challenge as carrying a light potato sack, he admires youâ-thighs clenched, hair splayed around your head like a halo. The skirt of your clothes has inched its way up, exposing your thighs. âGods, you donât know what you do to me.â
But instead of playing the innocent maiden, you look at him through your lashes, laughing. âSatoru, time is of the essence. Flattery will get you nowhereâyou must show it through your actions.â
You didnât know what saying his nameâand prompting him like thatâdoes to him. He meets your lips in a furious kiss once again, this time hand sneaking up your skirt. He meets the fabric of your loincloth, hooking at its sides and pulling them downwards and downwards, until it is hooked off your ankle (not before Satoru leaves it a trailing kiss there, of course. It is only until Satoruâs eyes hone in whatâs in the middle of legs that you realize that you are bare to him. âSatoru, Iââ
âI must do something,â he instead responds, and you look at him in confusion. Heâs moving down your body as you ask him what he means and if somethingâs wrong.
Youâre interrupted by your gasp as his mouth descends on you, leaving hot, openmouthed kisses directly on your core. His tongue delves inside your lower lips, pleasing the nerves and leaving them singing. He undoes you, leaving your legs feeling like jelly, and the fervor he does it with is nauseatingâas if your nectar is ambrosia itself.Â
Soon enough, with his reverent worshipâand a finger or two added to stretch you out and make you emit embarrassing noises that only encourage him furtherâyou come with a cry of his name. As you roll your hips, riding out your climax, his mouth and head follow and trail your hips, unrelenting in pleasuring you even though youâre overstimulated and left quivering.Â
âIââ you blurted, trying to fill the silence after he had just made you taste colors. âI hate you.â
Satoru faux pouts, biting back a grin. âRude thing to say when I just made youââ
âDonât finish that!â you shriek, swatting his head lightly as he laughs, kissing his way back up your body. In a tone more shy than youâd like, you say in a small voice, âBut I hope weâre not done yet?â
Satoruâs made his way up to your clothed breasts, kissing them tenderly. However, when he hears the question, he stills, looks at you with wide eyes, and he groans, as if surprised by your forwardness. âPrincess, the things you do to me.â
He kneads your ass while he stands up, orienting himself into a position to doâthat. A voice in the back of your head reminds you that youâre not supposed to be doing this before you get married, but your lust is too strong. And, after all, you trust that thereâs no way Satoru wouldnât marry you.
You feel a slight pressure in your nether regions, and you realize that it is Satoruâs cock. His eyes are on you, blown out with lust, as he continues to stroke the length of it while observing your every reaction. âAre you sure you want to do this?â
âYes.â
With your confirmation, his eyes next left your face as he pushed in, moving slowly and gently. He gauged your features for any signs of discomfort or pain as he moved in shallow thrusts, gradually increasing their length. You gasped, his murmurs and sweet nothings coaxing out your whimpers and whines as he bumped a spot inside of you. As he did, fireworks erupted in the back of your mind, leaving you boneless as he got you closer and closer to your climax once again.
For someone who didnât experience carnal desires often, you wonder how youâve gone without this kind of pleasure for so long. Satoru made you feel worshipped, tracing kisses with a love that was almost pious. It doesnât take you long after that to come once more, thrashing in his grip.
Your climax sheathed on his cock unlocks something in him, for he begins to thrust harder and faster, becoming sloppier and sloppier. His voice is by your ear, whining your name continuously. When he finally feels himself climb over and finally orgasm, he breathes out an âAh,â and thrusts himself to completely bottom out while his come fills you up, pooling inside of you.
You both stay interlocked for gods know how long. Until Satoru pipes up, voice still unstable and panting, âBy the way, it went unsaid, but Iâm going to marry you. And you canât say no.â
Your resulting giggle makes him break out in a big smile before he hugs you, wrestling you both to lie side by side in bed.
It goes without saying, but it all goes smoothly according to plan.
When Satoru had played with petteia with you, he had aimed to show Athena your wit. It is no small claim to defeat him, a king associated with Athena, in the game. The following events further made Athena approve of you and give her blessing.Â
So Gojo was already ten steps ahead when he asked your father for your blessing. Your father was furious, of courseâhe did not want to let you go. After much cajoling and agreement to beat your father, a champion runner, in a race to attain your hand, Satoru wiped his brow. The way your father loved you would be scary to him if he didnât love you as intensely as he did now.Â
And of course Satoru won. Athena got her fellow Olympian, Hermes, to rent out his infamous speed. When he wins, Sparta is in an uproar, including your cousin.
âSo, how is he?â Helen asks mischievously. You later found out that day that Helenâs words of marrying Gojo had a purposeâto push you both towards each other, once and for all.Â
âI donât know what you mean,â you turn away, with a hmph. Crossing your arms, you pretend to roll your eyes at the knowing look she had.
âI donât know, cousin,â she giggles, âI heard a couple of voices in your room when I tried to visit you a few nights back. Tell me, does he whimperâ-â
âHelen!âÂ
The day you marry, donning beautiful and regal clothes, Gojo sneaks you away multiple times to kiss you under your veil when no one is looking.
His wedding gift is built by himâon the voyage back to Ithaca, he not only takes you away from Sparta, but the olive tree that you both had met at. He builds the shared marital bed out of the olive tree for his queen with his blood and sweat. It is a symbol of your love, everlasting, and you would daresay that it is the most precious gift anyone has ever given you.
What you give him in return is one fat and giggly baby. Your father grumbles that the child looks too much like his father, but the way he holds the babeâso carefully, so gentlyâbetrays his affection. Helen coos at her little nephew, amused at how utterly soft Satoru has become, how the once-cocky king now spends his days doting on both you and your child, as if he has won the world itself.
And perhaps he has.
After all, Satoru has always been a man of ambition. A man who would scheme, fight, and even defy the gods for what he desires. And yet, as he holds your child in one arm and you in the other, murmuring teasing words against your ear before stealing another kiss, you realize somethingâ
He had never needed Athenaâs wisdom, Hermesâ speed, or any other divine favor to win you.
Because you had already been his, just as he had always been yours.
general masterlist
a/n thank u to my very supportive bestie @purplegemadventures i love all ur ideas ml <3 anyways like always all my beta readers are the goats thank you for reading my incomprehensible ideas. it's 5am and there's a mosquito that's hovering near me and im not totally happy w how this turned out but it was fun writing it kjenkjne. i may write more greek mythology aus but i need to lock in on my series....
ppl who asked to be tagged: @heh123321 @melotter
thank you for reading! reblog and comment to let me know ur thots <3
#aashi writes#gojo x reader#gojo smut#gojo x you#jjk x reader#jjk smut#jjk x you#gojo satoru x reader#gojo satoru smut#gojo satoru x you#jujutsu kaisen x reader#jujutsu kaisen smut#jujutsu kaisen x you#jjk#jjk fic#jujutsu kaisen#gojo satoru
14K notes
·
View notes
Text

I dunno what these things are but I blame Andruil.
#shitpost#i dont actually hate her#but i am humored that i think everything is her doing#may more likely to be dirthamen stuff#especially as an âin between worldsâ thing#but purpose - unity - the big trees in the alienages?#connecting cities without roads?#could be she#i see her as the big conqueror#maybe this was already confirmed to be dirthamen tho#but i cant even find what these things are called#so for a second#it was HER doing again
0 notes
Text
Okay I have a story.
So my birthday is this Sunday (May 26th). My mom ordered some presents for me but one of them (an Etsy purchase) was seemingly stuck in transit and might not make it on time. I tell my mom all good, no worries. She gets in contact with the seller. After a long delay in response they get back with "Right we'll fix it!" It ships, tracking label and everything, good to go! ETA May 22nd (yesterday.)
During the work day I check the tracking and it says it's been delivered in/at mailbox! I double check with my mom "hey, is it mailbox size?" because if not, I don't want it sitting at the front door where anyone walking by could snag it.
She says "it's definitely NOT mailbox size." Okay. I text my neighbors in the building "Anyone seen a package delivered? It's a birthday gift from my mom and I wanna make sure it gets inside!" Success! Floor 2 David (not to be confused with Floor 1 David) had brought it inside. Inform my mom. All good!
I stop by home briefly around 4pm, because yesterday was hot-hot and I just installed my window A/C that morning in the living room, and according to my cat cam my stupid cat hasn't spent a single second in the climate controlled living room and is, instead, voluntarily baking herself elsewhere so I'm like "great" and hop on my bike to go home (10 minute ride) to check on her.
I get in the building door. Patches is crying from the top floor because she heard me. I maneuver my bike in the front hall. The ugliest fucking 6-foot-tall cat tree(?)/totem(?)/statue(?) I've seen in my entire life is just. Standing there.
My first thought is "What the fuck is that." My second thought is "Oh fuck that is for me." I look around at the floor in case there's perhaps anything else that might, in fact, be the gift.
No. Me and Cat Pole.
It's taller than me. I turn it around to face me and its face is painted and this is, in fact, uglier than it looked from the back.
Um.
Patches is crying. So I just haul it up to my level. MAYBE it was supposed to come with twine that I wrap around it (and hide its face from the world) for Patches to scratch. Maybe this is a prank. Maybe this is an inside joke, because when my mom moved into her current house the neighborhood gifted her some ugly-as-hell totem that apparently, by tradition, each newest-comer to the neighborhood is required to have and display in their window so maybe this is a very good riff on that.
Patches rubs against it. She's not afraid of this horrid facsimile of her kind.
Great.
Meanwhile SHE'S fine and the condo is a little toasty but totally liveable so I'm like "Good, cool, you're not baking. You're having a good time. Enjoy your new sister, I guess, I'll see you later."
I go back to work because this is a problem for later me.
After work, after my run, after whatever, I get home and it's like 8:00pm and Patches is so happy to see me and the totem pole is still just. There.
I text my friends like "so a bday gift is here from my mom and it's the Biggest Ugliest cat pole I've seen in my life. Is this a bit? Did my mom go 'that's so ugly haha! send!' Maybe she genuinely found it cute. How do I navigate this." My friend Sarah has the good advice to maybe text my mom neutrally like "Got the cat pole!" and feel the waters whether my mom is like "Isn't it ugly? đ" or "Hope Patches likes it! đ„°"
My mom goes to bed early so I don't do any of that yet. Problem for tomorrow me.
This morning, Patches wakes me up for breakfast. I get her situated and I'm staring at the fucking Cat Pole again. I wonder if my Mom's been wondering all night what I thought of it.
I take a picture. I text her.

Okay.

I get on call with my mom. I ask for clarity that the ungodly horrid thing is NOT my birthday gift and is in fact a mix-up from the seller who sent me this instead of my actual gift. She's wheezing between words. She thinks I'm being too charitable for the amount of Absolute Fucking Ugly this is. I have to gently talk her out of using the word "monstrosity" while messaging the seller asking what the hell happened here.
I tell her I need to apologize for harming her dignity with Floor 2 David, who thinks this fucking thing is my mom's idea of a great birthday gift for her to-be-28-year-old daughter.
My heart goes out to the poor soul who did actually order this cat totem and is lacking it on this lovely day.
23K notes
·
View notes
Text
đđĄđ đđ«đ«đđ§đ đđŠđđ§đ, đđđ đđ°đš




pairing: gojo x fem!reader
part two of the arrangement
summary: life was going well. better than you could have ever imagined. the whirlwind marriage between you and gojo satoru that started as an arrangement blossomed into something sweeter and more tender after you both fell in love. but that storybook life you've been living soon shatters when you're told that a bitter king wants you two to separate so gojo could marry his daughter. either that, or he promises a war to follow. you live between selfishness and sacrifice as the fate of the kingdoms rests in your, and your husband's hands.
warnings: 18+ mdni, angst with no comfort for a while, near-death experiences, gojo sometimes struggling to be reasonable, small panic attack, heavy making out, heavy smut, unprotected sex, loss of virginity, (reader's first time), creampie, (happy ending)
word count: 38k+ (sorry again)
note: act two is finally done! (nearly lost my fingers writing it) art credit: _3aem
jjk masterlist + series masterlist

One year ago you were told about an arrangement. The arrangement.Â
It offered you a chance of freedom, a lick of life. You didnât have time to question why the most sought-after bachelor of the six kingdoms was asking for you to be his bride, and only a daft, bumbling idiot would seek out the answer when time was given. Gojo Satoru was the man you soon called husband, but the true act of having an actual husband didnât come around till months later.Â
At first, the dinners you spent alone were now spent together. Albeit in silence, but sometimes youâd catch his stare from the other side of the long, mahogany table, and the two of you would quickly look away. On other days youâd walk around the estate only to catch him when he was training with his men, his loud voice booming around the walls as he commanded them. Youâd watch them from the balcony, leaning over the railing as you rested your chin in your palm. Sometimes heâd look up and see you, not doing anything to hide his surprised expression, other times he tried puffing his chest out so heâd seem even bigger.
All of the unspoken feelings, lingering touches, and longing glances morphed into the two of you spurring out your thoughts to one another, elated and relieved to find that the other felt the same.
Months would pass and a part of you wondered if perhaps what he felt was only momentary. But those worries quickly seemed to pass the more you surveyed him. Because the most esteemed man, the most worshiped warrior destined to lead his lands to greatness, could not seem to survive apart from you for longer than five minutes.Â
âLove, we have to go.âÂ
Itâs your fifth time telling your husband about the urgency of getting out of bed, and the fifth time heâs tugged your squirming body closer to his bare chest to get you to stay in bed. His arms, which are the size of tree trunks, prove to work more than your pathetic flails, chuckling when you let out a deafening, annoyed whine.Â
Months ago you never entertained the idea of the two of you sharing a bed, let alone the man you married turning into such a leech. Seeing how you were first sleeping on separate sides of the estate, you always assumed you had ended up in one of those marriages in which the only time you two ever saw each other was during meal time (if that) and at gatherings.Â
But things took a turn, and after a while, that turn never stopped. And you found yourself here. With no complaints, of course.Â
The days when the two of you werenât burdened with the life of being the Lord and Lady of the North, Gojo would whisk you away to wherever you pleased. Sometimes you settled to bake some sweets in the kitchen, other times you requested to go into town and look through the bustling markets. He would always oblige, taking you down to the epicenter of Northern life, watching as you carded your fingers through the fabrics and stocked up on your spices. And though you enjoyed prancing around with your husband attached to your side, most days, these were the moments you loved the most.Â
Other days youâd find yourself with newly made friends, women you had slowly gotten closer to the more you socialized. It took a while for you to move away from the quietness you had been accustomed to for so long, but you preferred walking around the town or the estate with them, arm in arm as you laughed about something minuscule.Â
Nights were spent with each other, skin to skin, sharing the warmth. Mornings like this would come and heâd awake before you, pulling you closer to his chest as he nudged his nose against your ears. Heâd whisper how much he loved you, how pretty you were when you slept. It proved to be a nice and easy way to wake up, but on the days where you were particularly stubborn and wanted to sleep more, heâd bite your ear, chuckling when you would let out a fake whine. Afterward, youâd grumble about it, like now, but other times youâd laugh softly when youâd turn and see his blushing face.Â
âPeople might gossip if they hear you,â your husband muttered against your head, his lips pulled back into a large grin, âThey might say Iâm torturing you, leaving you unsatisfied.âÂ
Your cheeks heat up at his implications and you wrangle a hand out of his hold to slap at his torso, rolling your eyes as you give up, going slack in his arms as you relax against him. You mightâve put up a tougher fight if this wasnât a daily occurrence and your overall zest to equal the strongest man ever known was decreasing.
âYouâre so lude,â you comment, and he just shrugs in response, knowing that you werenât lying. If anything, this was him being more than tame. Sometimes heâd corner you in a hallway that had heavy foot traffic and kiss you senseless, his plush lips growing into a sly grin when somebody caught the two of you.
âYou make me lude,â Gojo remarks and you sigh, pretending to find him annoying instead of endearing as you look away. In reality, you loved your mornings together. With how busy the two of you got throughout the day, these little blips of being alone together were heavily enjoyed.
You rub at your eyes, yawning a little bit as you stretch your legs out. You find yourself sleeping better than you ever have in this bed, and whether it be the fact that your husband was asleep next to you or that the bed was constructed of goose feathers, you didnât care much to question it.Â
âWe should go into town today,â Gojo says suddenly, and you turn your neck slightly over to him as you raise a brow. He mirrors your expression as if he isnât riddled with duties that need to be taken care of.
âA ride into town alone takes an hour,â you argue, bringing his hand closer to yours so that you can fidget with his slender fingers.Â
âIâm well aware,â he says, âBut you were saying last night that you need more cinnamon sticks and that your honeycomb stash is nearly gone.âÂ
You try to hide your smile, try not to let him know how pleased you are that he remembers the little things you mention to him on a whim.
When you donât say anything in excitement to his plan, he pours slightly, nudging at your shoulder with his nose.Â
âHave you grown tired of me?â His voice is slightly muffled against your skin and you laugh a little bit, the sound making him smile slightly, hiding it against your collarbones, âDo you wish to cast me aside and take on a different lover?â
Your mouth drops open in a loud laugh, shoving your shoulder upwards so that his chin would fall off and you look at him in shock.Â
But thereâs a teasing grin on his face, one that truly just wanted to see you smile.Â
âIâm just trying to be sensible,â you say with a pout, craning your neck as you glance up at him, your legs sprawling out on his, âYou have that meeting with your advisors and I have to pretend Iâm not listening to your meeting with your advisors.âÂ
Gojoâs eyes crinkle upwards, soft and gentle as he looks at you like you raised the moon, and pinches your arm slightly.Â
âIâve told you if you want to join us youâre welcome to,â he says against the skin of your neck, his lips moving fast and you try to hide your bursts of giggles at the ticklish feeling, âIâd much prefer having you inside with me than standing alone outside.â You also try to hide the way you burn up wherever his fingers are, which at the moment are gripping at your hips.
âBut itâs more fun when it feels like Iâm learning state secrets,â you murmur teasingly, turning around a bit so that the two of you are face to face. So close that you could count the amount of eyelashes he had and the little dust of barely visible freckles on his cheeks. He was training more than usual now, spending more time in the sun. His pink lips pull into a wide smile when he finally sees you, all of you, and runs a hand under your calf and up to your thigh to hike it up over his waist.Â
Gojoâs eyes trail over your features for a silent second, admiring your appearance early in the morning, disheveled from a good night's rest. You feel like hiding, but admire the endless attention you receive from him at the same time. You feel foolish when you note how his features soften, his smile genuine and bright when his thumb traces over the hairs of your eyebrow.
A part of you never thought you would have a husband who looked at you the way he does. When you were younger you always assumed youâd end up a spinster or married off to an old man in need of an heir. This is why you so eagerly accepted the Gojo familyâs initial proposal, but you never expected much to come from it. Never in your dreams did you envision the Gojo Satoru holding you close to him with such tender care, or that heâd gingerly run his fingers across the slope of your nose just to memorize your bone structure.
Never this.
Gojo Satoru was somebody who you had grown up with but observed from a distance. You always assumed that he and his family would prefer for him to marry a girl with a moreâŠfavorable background than you, but by a force of fate, you were the lucky girl they picked. You found yourself immensely lucky seeing that it was either him or evil incarnate himself, but some mornings you wake up and expect to blink yourself out of this dream. That youâll turn around to find some other man than him, somebody with an oily smile and evil eyes. But just like this morning you woke up to fluttering kisses on the exposed skin of your shoulder and slender fingers trailing up your arm.Â
âYou have that look,â Gojo murmurs gently, his eyes tracing the way your lips part, the way they do when youâre in your world, âThe one where youâre deep in thought,â he says, his voice a little softer as your gaze settles back onto him.
You think a little longer, eyes squinting as you smile.Â
Itâs been a while since the two of you have had a decent amount of time alone together. Mornings together, dinners, and then nights climbing into bed seemed to be the only blips of time when he wasnât riddled with counsels and you with overseeing and trying to take care of problems the people of the neighboring towns were dealing with (last week you had to carefully settle a dispute with two farmers arguing over a goat, claiming it was their own.)
âI'm thinkingâŠ.â you chew on your bottom lip a little bit, âIâm thinking I want to go away,â you say with a sigh, resting your back upon the headboard behind you as Gojo leans upwards, resting his weight on his arms.Â
His white brow cocks up, not confused, just curious.Â
âWhere to?â He asks, and you know he couldâve asked something more extensive, but heâs gotten to know you and your strange requests, knowing you preferred simple questions instead.Â
You hum, crossing your legs across the bed as you bring his hand back to yours and play with the wedding ring on his finger. He lets you do it, his fingers curling a bit so that they can hold onto yours, limiting your movements just a little bit.Â
âYour summer home,â you say, tilting your head towards him, a gleam in your eyes, âThe one near the ocean. Do you remember? The one where we all used to go when we were younger?â
Gojo nods a little bit, his pink lips and pink cheeks pulling upwards in a little grin. This was something he would very much be willing to fulfill.Â
âI think thatâs doable,â he says and your smile widens, âWe can invite-â
âNo,â you cut him off, shaking your head, eyes flitting to his momentarily before they dropped back down to his large hands, which were freckles slightly as well, âJust us.â
Gojo nods a little bit, swaying his head from side to side as he thinks about how quickly he can put all of this together. Maybe if it were any other man heâd be taken aback by the strange and unexpected request, but he was your husband and was used to your nature by now.Â
âIâll tell my men, Iâm sure weâll be able to pull some strings and be there by next week,â Gojo tells you after a minute of thinking and you grin, going to say something but get interrupted by a steady knock on the door.
âMy lady?â One of the girls, Alina, calls out, and you look back at Gojo with a smile, knowing the slight angry pout thatâs going to be taking over his face.Â
âComing!â you respond after a beat, pressing a soft kiss to your husband's forehead as you brush the white strands of hair away from his face before pushing the blanket off of both you and your husband as you swivel your legs around the bed, sitting up as you stretch your arms above your head and yawn.Â
You hear the bed squeak as Gojo does the same, the wooden floor creaking as he stands up, walking over to your side as he leans his back on one of the pillars of the bed, waiting for you to stand.Â
When you finally do he leans down to press a chaste kiss to your lips, knowing how much you were averse to his breath in the morning, and another one to the tip of your nose. His hand rests at the back of your head, gentle and soft.
âIâll bring up the trip to my advisors today,â he starts, and your eyes twinkle, âAnd Iâll see you at dinner,â he tells you, and you nod, running your hand up and down his sturdy arm. You pinch at the muscles and he yelps a little bit, looking down to where your fingers are and you canât help but laugh, soothing over the spot.
âIâll see you then,â you say with a smile. Thereâs a little silent beat before he speaks.
âI love you,â Gojoâs voice lowers slightly, knowing that the women outside canât hear him, but still wanting his words to only grace your ears.Â
You giggle, your cheeks pulling upwards as you smile brightly, your hands trailing upwards to tangle in the hairs at the nape of his neck.Â
âI love you more,â you reply giddily.Â
---
Once your maids came in and got you ready for the day, you bid farewell to Gojo, knowing that with how long his meetings with the advisors and counselors went you most likely werenât going to be seeing him till later in the night.Â
You donât miss the way the younger girls blush when they see him kiss you farewell on the side of your forehead or the way they stare longingly at his musculature figure as he leaves the room, but you donât care much. They can stare as much as theyâd like. Youâll stare at them. You know youâre the only one he looks at anyway. Especially when you catch the wink he sends your way before closing the door shut.Â
The five girls come bustling in as usual, helping you out of your sleeping garments, although youâve told them countless times that you donât need help to undress yourself. They help lace you up in your corset and bodice, helping you with your chosen outfit of the day. As usual, you find yourself in the plush chair as they dote over your appearance, swiping honey over your lips and dusting powder over your cheeks.
It was a routine you had slowly gotten used to. A far cry from your old life where youâd turn out of bed, get dressed in your sister's old clothes, and walk through the pantry and into the kitchens to find something to eat. But this was better, far better than that. Â
But despite those younger girls and their bubbly personalities, there was something off with the way your usual maids were acting. Alina, who usually was the most talkative out of the group, only met your eyes in the mirror a couple of times, her lips pressed into a thin line as she quickly looked away.Â
Two of the other girls, Maryam and Lilly, seemed to be whispering together in hushed tones. It was ineligible from where you were sitting, and you tried to make yourself seem as discreet as possible as you slightly angled your head towards them, but to no avail. Sometimes, when you could look up for them to clasp the gold necklace around your neck, courtesy of Gojo, you saw the way they glanced at each other and then down to you with pursed lips and downcast eyes.Â
When Alina went to dot some lavender oil on your wrists you saw how her hands were slightly shaking, her fingers cold and clammy.Â
âAlina?â You said with a little laugh, eyebrows pulled together in confusion, âAre you alright?â You pressed the backs of your fingers to her cheek and then her forehead. A couple of months ago she wouldâve pulled away in shock, telling you how unorderly it was for a lady to get this close to her maid, but sheâs gotten used to it, and she only pulled away after a few seconds.
The other girls around you pause as you speak, but you donât notice how they seem to mirror Alinaâs expression.Â
You watch as she swallows thickly, nodding her head down low as she places the glass bottle of oil down on the vanity. Her brown curls bounce a little bit with her movements, her large brown eyes wavering, as if she couldnât bear to look at you.Â
A look of perplexity takes over your face. Had you said something?
âIs something wrong?â You press again, turning around in your chair as you look at the other girls who have now fallen silent. None of them seem to be looking at you.Â
You let out a curt laugh, arms resting on the back of the chair as your head tilts slightly.Â
âAlina?â You ask one more time, your voice dropping a bit out of genuine worry. But you can only watch as she takes a deep, shuddering breath, her head still facing downwards as if there was a weight on her shoulders.Â
You go to stand up but she quickly ushers for you to sit back down, though you see the way she brings her palms up to her eyes, trying to wipe something away.Â
Was she crying?Â
âWhatâŠ?â You reach your hands out, trying to see what is wrong, but she looks up quickly and youâre taken slightly aback by the way her eyes seem bloodshot and wet cheeks, stained with tears.Â
She shakes her head again, lips trembling as she quickly bows her head to you.
âIâm s-sorry my lady,â she says in a choked voice, âWeâre done. Iâll see you tonight.â And before you can ask what was going on, to see if she was okay, you watch as she almost runs out of the room, leaving your other maids standing in a heavy, awkward silence. You look around to see what the other maids are looking like, surely as startled as you were, but if anything, they seemed to be struggling as equally as Alina was.Â
âWhatâsâŠ.whatâs wrong? Do you know-â âWe have to leave, my lady,â Maryam quickly says, cutting you off unintentionally as the other girls mirror her movements and bow their heads down in respect, âI apologize.â
You sputter, trying to find something to say, but fall silent as you watch them file out in your room in the same hurry as Alina.Â
You stand still, staring at the large wooden door.
What was that?Â
â-
You try going about your day like normal.Â
You asked around, trying to see if anybody had seen where Alina or the rest of your maids had run off to, but nobody seemed to find an answer.Â
Not only that, but it seemed like the girl's strange behavior was reciprocated around the entire estate. Wherever you went, people would look at you for a second longer. You try not to make it obvious, and after years of being surveyed, youâve gotten rather good at discretely listening in on what others are doing and saying.Â
Walking around the halls alone, you keep your head down and ears open. You donât miss the way some of the servants murmur things to each other behind their hands, their stares never leaving your frame. Youâre grateful that today was one of the days Shoko, who you had become good friends with, wasnât able to join you. With her rapid talking you doubt you would be able to hear any of the gossip even if it was shouted in your left ear.
You felt like you had been transported back to your old home, with your father's wife and your sisters. The constant whispers wherever you went, the eyes trained on your back. It was benign and odd, something that had never, ever happened until today.Â
Something was wrong, and nobody was telling you what it was.
You had initially wanted to eavesdrop on the meeting Gojo was having with his advisors, but with the pit in your stomach and the dizzying feeling you were having everywhere you went, you decided to hide the rest of the day in the library, finding a little alcove where you could nestle away from everybody else.Â
Truth be told, you had known something was wrong for the past week. Although today was the first physical evidence of this hunch youâve had, thereâs been something off in the air and you didnât have the heart to voice this insanity to your husband. You tried brushing it off after the first couple of days.Â
As somebody who grew up around maids and servants, cooks and cleaners, you were aware of how they were often the first to learn of any news. Words traveled fast with those who worked, and it didnât take long to settle. You had been the subject of whispers and subjected others to being the victim of it, but either way, you saw firsthand how quickly gossip would and could spread. Especially when it was good. Even more so when it was bad.Â
You could only wonder what it was that was plaguing the mouths of everybody around you. Has somebody passed? Somebody you knew? Your palm grew sweaty at the thought. There were only so many people you were close to and one of them you saw alive this morning. It couldnât have been your father, they wouldnât drag it out like this. You chew your lips raw, thinking. If it wasnât a death, then it must be regarding the social circle sphere that youâve recently found yourself a part of.Â
You stare at the walls lined with books, blankly blinking as you rake your mind.Â
It had to be serious and it had to be important. But as much as you tried to think, you kept drawing blanks.Â
And so, as much as you tried telling yourself it was nothing, you knew deep down it was something. Today you had seen the people around you exhibit what you were more fearful of, but this past week you could pick up on hushed and worried voices. You could barely even read the first page of the book you had blindly selected from one of the many shelves, and when the sun set in the large window behind you, you had to remind yourself that there was still dinner to be had.Â
You begrudgingly made your way to the dining hall, knowing you could barely stomach a block of cheese let alone a full meal. You had spent the last couple of hours letting your mind run over all the horrible things that could be coming your way, and having to mull over all those horrible things over food might cause you to become sick.
The guards open the large double doors for you as you begin to enter, and you feel a part of you deflate seeing that Gojo isnât already there.Â
You slowly make your way to your seat, moving in a trance as you pull your chair in, looking around to get a sense of the mood in the room. Heavy, from what you could tell. Perfect, you think to yourself.
The servants bring in different assortments of food prepared tonight, and had you had a better appetite you mightâve finished them the second they had arrived. But it felt like there was cotton shoved in your ears, barely hearing anything they were telling you.Â
You swallow your bile down, your head ringing as you look up from your plate and to the man in front of you, your forehead dotted with sweat. You like your chapped lips, fidgeting with the ring on your finger.Â
âWhere,â your tongue feels heavy in your mouth, âWhere is my husband?âÂ
The servant blinks once, then twice.Â
He rubs the back of his head apprehensively, looking behind him to the closed doors, and then back to you. You could feel the way he was taking in your sick appearance, the way you seemed to be swaying side to side in your set as a means to help your queasy self.Â
âLord Gojo wonât be joining dinner tonight, my lady.â The man tells you. You know his name and have seen him countless times, but you canât think about what the first letter of his name even starts with.Â
âDid he say why?â You think your hands are shaking, and you grip the fabric of your dress to calm them down.Â
In all honesty, you donât know exactly why youâre freaking out the way you are. It could be something simple thatâs happened and Gojoâs only stalling to tell you because he doesnât find it to be important. But in all the time youâve lived at this estate, have become the Lady of the North, youâve seen things going right and things going wrong. Youâve observed the way the maids and servants act with one another and how they act with you when things arenât going well. Theyâve taken a deep liking to you, and respect you and your title. They care about you, which you still have trouble accepting given your past life, but they do things out of the goodness of their hearts. So if they were talking behind your back, it couldnât be because they no longer care about you. Itâs worse, and you canât fathom what it must be.
âNoâŠmy lady, I apologize.â
You glance up at the man again and nod slowly.Â
âThank you,â you chew on the inside of your cheek, âThat, thatâs all.âÂ
He bows down, giving you a small smile, one that doesnât quite reach his eyes and exits.Â
You look down at your plate and heave out a breath.
â-
Dinner was spent in total silence, but that was a given seeing that Gojo never showed up.Â
You donât know how long it took for you to walk up the stairs that led to your shared bedroom, but you know it took longer than usual with the way it seemed like your legs were weighing you down.
When you entered the room, all you were reminded of was this morning with Alina and the other maids, and it only worsened your already raving heart. You tried to sit at the edge of your bed and calm your breathing, but slowly you realized that you needed to be moving. Sitting was only going to worsen your condition. Â
You paced around the expansive room, fidgeting with your ring, moving it up and down your finger as you tried to busy yourself with taking off your other pieces of jewelry.Â
You had also requested for the girls to not come in tonight. You needed to be alone, not knowing what youâd do if you were to see their pale, fear-stricken faces again.Â
With shaky hands and multiple efforts, you were finally able to unclamp your necklace and take off your earrings. You tried to wet some cloth and drag it across your face, hoping the cool water would help. It didnât.Â
A part of you tried to force yourself to think that you were simply overreacting. There was nothing to worry about. But deep inside, you knew that that was a lie. You felt this same way when you were a little girl and your father's men raided you and your mother's little home to take you away from here. This was the same feeling you had when you were informed of your marriage with Naoya Zenin. It was the same, deafening and nauseating feeling whenever youâd walk into a room and know that everybody there knew your secrets before you even knew them.Â
There was a moment in which you thought perhaps that part of your life was left behind, but it seemed like with every creeping shadow, it was still following you around.Â
Still, you did what you could to distract yourself. You were able to unlace the back of your bodice and corset, pulling your shaky legs out of your petticoat and skirt. You ringed around your wardrobe and found a shift that was suitable for the summer breeze.Â
There seemed to be only a few seconds where you wouldnât look at the door, but you couldnât help yourself. Youâd glance at the old grandfather clock in the corner, feeling your blood roar in your ears as the hands ticked away later into the night. It was unusual for a meeting to take this long. And if it did, Gojo wouldâve warned you ahead of time so that you wouldnât worry the way youâre doing now.Â
It took nearly another two hours of your frantic effort to stay awake when your bedroom door creaked open and Gojo walked in. His white hair was messy, eyes sunken in. When he saw that you were awake his glare softened slightly.Â
You could only blink when you saw him, your nails digging into your palm, surely leaving little crescent moons indented into your skin.Â
There was an unwelcome silence that followed afterward. You watched as he shut the door, rubbing his tired eyes, and looked back up at you through furrowed brows.Â
âYouâre not asleep?â He groggily asked as he began to take off his boots, his back rippling with muscles from under his tunic as you gnawed on your lips and he stood up from his position on the floor. Â
âI couldnât,â you simply said, moving forward a couple of steps and slowly leaning into his outstretched arms as he pulled you into his chest, planting a tender, heavy kiss on the side of your head. One of his hands pressed tightly against your back, not moving. Â
There was another moment of silence, one heavy and unknown as you listened to the sound of his heartbeat.Â
âIs everything alright?â Your voice was muffled, but still audible, as you finally asked the question that was searing into your head.Â
There was another beat of silence, but this one was uncomfortable. Gojo hadnât let go of you yet.
âYes,â he finally said, but you had heard better lies from your sisters after they ate your pastures and said they didnât than this.Â
Your brows furrowed as you looked up to him.Â
âWhat took so long?â You pressed, pulling away slightly as his lips formed into a thin line, and he dragged a hand down his face.Â
âJustâŠstate affairs,â he turned away from you, against eye contact as he ran another hand through his hair.Â
You scoffed, rolling your eyes as you crossed your arms over your chest. You thought that he had at least begun to trust you enough not to lie this blatantly.Â
âHave one of the states suddenly terminated their subject's existence?â You tried to tease, but your voice was flat and you couldnât hide the curiosity and hurt behind it. Gojo didnât laugh, which hurt even more. You leaned back on one of the pillars of your bed and watched as he stood with his back to you, contemplating something in utter silence.Â
How you loathed silence.Â
âWhatâs wrong?â You ask again, your tone heavy, not leaving any room for him to stay quiet.Â
Your brows furrowed even more, arms tighter around your middle as he heaved a heavy breath, and when he finally turned you wished he wouldâve just stayed hidden from you. Because there were spots of red in the whites of his shimmering eyes, and that was more fearful than the quiet.Â
You tilt your head, not knowing what to do, and see his breath in shakily. The only time you had seen him break was that night he confessed to you in the field. Never again. Not until now.Â
You take a tentative step forward, eyes searching his but he canât bear to look at you.Â
âI know thereâs something wrong,â you say shakily, taking a deep breath as you pinch the bridge of your nose, âAlina nearly broke down in front of me today and everyone around the house seems to be walking on glass. SoâŠso please just tell me what it is.â Youâre pleading with him at this point, and you donât care if youâre losing a shred of dignity.Â
Gojo takes a deep breath, his hand searching for yours as you oblige. Itâs warm, comforting. His thumb rubs up and down your wrist apologetically.Â
His nose picks up on the smell of lavender oil, one heâs come to associate with you. Itâs calming, a gentle reminder of his home, the one thing he fights for. When he looks at you and sees the worried crease of your brow, it only tugs on his heart more.Â
âYouâreâŠaware of how thereâs been some conflict with the South for a while, right?â Gojo finally asks, though it seems like speaking is physically hurting him, âAnd how tensions worsened when my father stepped down?â
You nod slowly, knowing of this. After all, you mightâve been kept in the shadows in your old life, but you werenât daft. You tried to keep up with the relations of the state as much as possible. Your father also did what he could to inform you of the Northâs relations with the other tribes and nations before your wedding. Given its sudden nature, there were some things you werenât able to fully learn until you got here, but it was common knowledge that the north and south were always teetering on an edge.Â
It was centuries of conflicts that dated well before your time. Bloody disputes over land, women, and coin often seemed to be the root cause of all the troubles, and however petty they might seem, theyâve mended themselves deep in the current rulers of the country. Gojoâs father, the previous Lord of the North, was a peaceful man, but there were tensions even he couldnât solve. The Southern King often ruled with an ironclad fist that only grew more spiteful when the old lord stepped down and Gojo took his place.Â
You remember your father sitting in front of you with an ancient book spread out in your old home's library, a candle flickering in the background as he told you all this. And the final thing that you couldnât forget he said regarding the current relations between the north and south were embedded in your mind.Â
âI know the king isnât happy with this arrangement at all,â your father had said as you flipped through the crinkly pages, smoothing over the wrinkles on his forehead as you glanced upwards.Â
âBecause of the Princess?â You asked, looking down briefly to read a passage on one of the northern wars that happened nearly three centuries ago.Â
âPartially because of that,â your father agreed, his eyes glancing over your features.Â
In the candlelight, when it was dim and nobody was around, he was allowed to look at you and see his daughter, not a bastard child everybody swore you were. Sometimes when you looked at him, he saw your mother. And when that happened, he had to look away.Â
âBut because of you. Because of who you are. Never forget the blood that runs in your veins is the blood that old lords and kings fought over.â
Your eyes narrowed, trying to think back to your sister's history lessons you listened to behind closed doors.Â
âMe?â You parrot, confused. Your father nodded, his fingers scratching at the slight stubble on his chin.Â
âThere are greater enemies than ones gained from lost land, and the South would never forget those who allied with the North to get them where they are now.â
So you knew that it certainly didnât help that Gojo married a daughter of the Western ruler, a union that in its nature was egregious to the South.Â
âAnd before I married you, my,â he squeezed his eyes shut, breathing deeply, âMy father had agreed for me to marry the Southern princess to mend our relationship.âÂ
You knew of the women Gojo had lined up, some in his favor and some not. The Southern princess was one of them. You had seen her a handful of times at the old gatherings you were forced to go to when you were younger. There was always a circle of girls circling around her, their voices chirpy and pitched like canaries, and whenever she said something, loud laughter (faux) would fall comedically from their lips. Your sisters always tried to befriend her, but you knew it wasnât your place. Youâd observe them from afar, taking note of the ridiculous amount of jewels and stones that decorated her bodice, her neck, her wrists, her hair. The boys would stare at her from a distance, talking to each other, trying to decide who should approach her first. The princess was indeed a true beauty, perhaps the most beautiful girl youâve ever seen, but that was the last bit of knowledge you had regarding her.
Much like you who was initially supposed to marry another man, Gojo was close to accepting the Southâs proposal to marry him off with their only daughter. But something happened, and the former Lady of the North proposed for you to marry her son instead.Â
âSo?â You shake your head in confusion, your stomach churning, âYouâre married to me now,â you state the obvious, but you see the way he smiles softly at that, nodding.Â
âThe Southern King wasnât fond of our marriage,â you watch as he twirls his ring around, âTheyâve been holding off on trade with the North and anybody whoâs pledged allegiance to us. Theyâve formed naval blockades around parts of our ocean that stop us from reaching our traders across the sea.â Gojo jams his palms into his eyes. For a moment he doesnât look like the ruler he is or the warrior heâs always been but a scared boy who doesnât know what to do.Â
You take another step forward, leaning into him as he deflates into you, one hand protectively going around your shoulders and the other around your waist.Â
âWell, surely there are ways to figure this out,â you say as confidently as you can, âWeâll ask for a smaller cut of their exports than usualâŠ.or offer another northerner of higher ranking for their princess,â you offer, looking up at him only to see his eyes wavering, the tip of his nose pink.Â
He swallows thickly.Â
âWe did,â he mutters, âWe did all of those things. All of those things and more. butâŠâ
He trails off and you shake your head, eyes wide.Â
âBut what?â You press and he rubs at his eyes, at his stray tears.Â
He goes to open his mouth but he canât. Youâve never seen him like this.Â
âThe Southern King, he-â your husband's voice cracks and you pull away in shock, in fear, in terror as he tries to control a sob. The most feared man of all the land fighting down a sob, and all you could do was watch in fear.Â
âHeâs promised war if we donât abide by his terms.â
Your tears have stung in your eyes, maybe because you were terrified of the response because a part of you knew that something good like this could only last for so long. That your moments of bliss were only to be cherished at an armâs length, good, but not eternal. Perhaps you shouldâve known from the start, should have braced yourself for something as terminal as this.Â
But war? You never could have prepared yourself for this. It had been years since the land had seen war of any kind. Minor battles and conflicts were impossible to avoid, but a declaration of war from a king was beyond what you could have comprehended.Â
Your eyes blink rapidly, your fingers twitching as they reach upwards to cover your mouth. There were only so many routes Gojo could decide to go down on. Depending on the conditions of the statement the king had set forth, there might be a way to avoid any senseless bloodshed. But you knew your husband, knew how much he cared for his land, for his people, for you, and if any one of those things were at stakeâŠ
âAnd,â your lips tremble, and how Gojo longs to kiss it away, if only his hands werenât shaking and heart pounding, âAnd what are his terms?â
A grim look takes over his face, one that looks like a knife has been dug into his stomach and has begun to twist. He opens his mouth once, twice, and fails. He canât speak. He canât say the wretched words out loud.Â
âThat,â Gojoâs voice is wavering, and itâs a strange, unnerving thing to hear, âThat I uphold by the initial promise. That I marry his daughter. That I separate fromâŠâ he blinks slowly, his mouth closing and then opening, a little gasp of horror leaving your lips as you piece together what he was saying.
Youâre shaking your head, lips trembling, moving away from him as you walk around the room until youâre standing near your vanity, your chest shaking with quivering breaths as you try desperately to keep your stinging tears at bay.
You can hear him shuffling, but with your back to him, you can only feel his presence come up from behind you as his hands try to grasp at your elbows, trying to move your hands away from your face. But itâs no use. Itâs as if youâve been petrified, turned into a stone statue. The only sign of movement was the way your chest heaved up and down with each gulp of air you were taking.
Heâs calling your name, but you feel like a fish underwater. You canât hear anything correctly, can only hear the pounding, shuddering beat of your dying heart. You squeeze your eyes shut, trying to hold on to the cries that are threatening to spill from your lips. You realize now what it was that the maids were talking about, why Alina was crying. It was no surprise to you that they were able to get word of them before you did. And you were no longer confused by their sullen responses.
Because there truly was no answer. No good answer, at least.Â
You couldnât justify a war over a marriage that didnât work out. You couldnât find it in yourself to allow Gojo to go through with it, despite knowing that was most likely what he was planning to do. An image of marching men, heading straight through a firey unknown, swords raised, and arrows drawn. You think of bloodstained letters finding their way home, wives crumbling upon finding the news of their husbands dead. Children left abandoned by their fathers and siblings. All of it in the name of a marriage. One marriage to survive while others withered away. Your eyes widened at the horrifying thought, trying to humor the other one.Â
The one that included your separation.
Separating from the only man youâve ever loved, who you consider to be your other half seemedâŠbarbaric. You couldnât imagine a life where you wouldnât wake up next to him, couldnât think of a day where he wouldnât sneak through hallways and corridors just to surprise you with some flowers he had picked from the garden. Your mind flashed, thinking of what separation truly meant. Banishment, for you. Your old life wouldnât accept you, his new wife wouldnât want you near. There was nowhere you could go that you had any familiarity with.
You felt your knees give out from beneath you, falling to the floor as you hunch over, cradling your thighs to your chest. You feel stupid, knowing how childish you mustâve looked to him. But you felt like you had been plagued by every sort of emotion, and it was tethering you downwards, down where you felt more safe.Â
Somewhere in the midst of this you could feel his guiding hands sprawl on your back, one slowly circling your shoulders. Gojo mustâve come down to meet you where you were, and you felt like a shell of a person as he gingerly pulled you toward his chest.Â
One of his hands moved upwards to cradle the side of your head, his thumb rubbing up and down your forehead, as he shakily tried to wipe your watery tears away. If only you knew how much it pained him to see you cry. He wished you knew that heâd rather be shot with a thousand arrows than see you cry tears of sorrow.
He was talking, you knew he was because you could hear muffeled noises from above you that mirrored his tone and voice. But you couldnât hear anything, trying your best to focus on the pieces of woven threads of the carpet beneath you.
â...alright,â you think he says, making out some words, â...will figureâŠoutâŠalright?â
You can only nod.Â
Alright?
â-
Nothing was alright.Â
Youâve barely slept ever since you got the news.Â
The people around you seem to have pieced together why youâre acting the way you are, and thankfully, they donât push it. Alina doesnât ask why youâve suddenly grown so silent, none of your other maids jest stupidly when they feel youâre especially down, and even the younger girls donât pretend to fawn over Gojo, gently applying rose water to your hair as they give you soft smiles.Â
Everybody in the estate knows whatâs happening, and nobody dares to bring it up. Wherever you go there seems to be a darkness that follows you. People go quiet when you walk past them, and looks of pity and solemness are clear on their faces. You feel like a ghost thatâs wading through the halls with nowhere to go. You feel like a dead body roaming the land of the living.Â
There were several of these meetings you went to, knowing that these ones should not be heard behind a closed door. You were told to come to more of them, but you slowly realized that the more you heard, the more sick you felt.Â
A part of you was screaming at yourself, begging to see what was truly at stake. A simple marriage was not worth the countless lives at stake. No matter how long this feud was going on between the North and South, you knew that using your marriage was just another scheme to worsen it.Â
The more you allowed yourself to think about the situation at hand, the more you felt yourself going mad. You knew that war wasnât the right answer, and it wasnât the one you wanted. You couldn't even begin to think about the piles of bodies, the smoke rising into the ashen sky as they were set on fire in Northern tradition. You think with a shudder about the homes raided, the women assaulted, just how much men turn to animals when war turns lawless. You think about the years to come, when thereâs nothing left of you but bones. How youâd be remembered in the stories, as the selfish whore wife that wouldnât separate from her husband and would rather watch lands be torn apart instead. So no, war wasnât the option.Â
But separating from your husband? How on earth was the better choice?
Perhaps a while ago you wouldnât have wanted to separate from him because you refused to go back to your old life. You didnât want to go back to your old room that could only be accessed through the dingy pantry and a dimly lit corridor.
You didnât want the constant reminder of your untrue blood, how much of a bastard reminder you were to your fathers life. Months ago you wouldâve tied yourself to a tree and let a bear feast off of you then become the social outcast again because you had lived through it once and would rather wind up dead.Â
But now, youâd chain yourself to that tree because leaving Gojo might be the other thing that would tear you apart.Â
You never thought it would be possible to be loved by another person who you love just as much. You had forced yourself into believing that tender care and pure adoration wasnât something you would ever receive in this lifetime. In all honesty, you didnât expect to receive it from Gojo Satoru either. But you did, and living a life without it would be more than empty. You knew you could never have him the way you do now, casted aside as another woman takes your place. And perhaps he might come to love her just as much, even more. But another part of you, the part thatâs been trying to claw its way out ever since you were a little girl is screeching. Screeching that you deserved that shot of happiness, of joy, that those moments you shared with your husband shouldâve only been shared by you two alone.Â
A part of you wilts when you even begin trying to think of mornings without him. Without him pulling you into his chest, murmuring words of nonsense into your ear as you pretend to sleep. Your heart burns when you begin to think of him kissing another girl the way he kisses you, bringing her to parties and balls tied around his elbow. You know the ton would appreciate a princess with the lord of the north far more than you, and you canât begin to imagine what would happen if Gojo began to prefer another union. One that benefited him more than it benefited his partner.Â
You werenât a jealous person by any means. Sometimes you got snippy, and sometimes you glared when women looked too long at your husband. But this was more than simple jealousy. It was biting away at you, taking away from the brightness that once bloomed across your entire body.Â
Maybe deep down you thought you deserved that chance of a better life, and maybe that part of you was just too optimistic knowing the hand youâve been dealt with up until now.Â
But gods would sooner fall out of the sky than you tell all this to Gojo. Not the latter, at least. But regardless, it seemed to brew more and more arguments between the two of you as of late.Â
âI donât understand why this is something that still needs to be discussed,â Gojo bit out one night as he was undressing to sleep, taking off his uniform as he angrily hung it up.Â
You had one hand wrapped around the bedpost, fidgeting with your necklace, the singular pearl moving back and forth as you shook your head.Â
You knew it was a bad idea bringing up the war plans right now. It was one of the first nights where Gojo was actually free from his meetings, earlier than what had become the norm. But it was also the first time you had properly seen him in almost a week, and your mind was nothing if not still.Â
âIâm not saying we terminate the marriage,â you pause when he snaps his neck over to you, his eyes darkening with a glare, âBut surely we canât be thinking of war. âToru there has-â
âThere is no other way,â his voice is deep, his back to you as he takes off his bottoms, kicking his heavy boots off as the thud against the wall, âIâve told you this countless times Iâm not separating from our marriage.â
Your chest is heavy, your heart churning, and he canât tell. You know there are thousands of other things that are riddling his mind right now, but you wish he could see what youâre begging him to see. If there was one thing youâve grown to know about Gojo is that his stubborn nature was unbridled and steady.Â
You wanted him to take a second and understand, or perhaps he did understand but chose to see this as a black and white matter, the gravity of what he was suggesting. It had been years since an actual war had been fought. Years since men were sent in blind with only their swords and their wits to keep them alive. None of you had seen the true calamity of war, the sheer destruction that followed from it. Gojo was thinking as the cold hearted warrior he had been trained to be, but not like the man you had fallen in love with.
âWhat if youâŠgods,â you groan, exasperated and tired, âWhat if you take the princess on as another wife?â The suggestion itself tastes like poison, bitter poison on your tongue, and maybe it soothes you just a little bit when Gojo lets out a bitter chuckle, his hands gripping the table as his knuckles turn white.Â
âDo you want me to do that? Truly?â He spits it out and you let out a deep sigh, pinching the bridge of your nose as you shrug helplessly.Â
âNo, fuck. No, I don't want you to do that! But what else can-â
He raises his hand upwards, something he does when he wants to interrupt you, and you clamp your mouth shut.Â
âWeâve declared war today,â he glances at you from over his shoulder and your eyes widen, âItâs final.â
You crumble against the wooden pole, fingers curling into the bed sheets as you choke on air. Final? Your fingers are trembling, your lips quivering as it feels like youâre struggling to breathe. No, you know you are. You feel lightheaded, the little bits of dinner you had surging upwards, bile filling your mouth.
He hadnât told you about any of this, had silently refused to tell you the status of this situation because he knew how loudly and adamantly you would protest it. But it was done now. There was nothing else you could do.Â
Gojo looked over at you, his face that was once cold and unmoving shifting to one of worry. Moving away from the warrior he was forced to be this past month and back to your husband.Â
He moves to where you were, but you shake your head, not bearing to look him in the eyes as you shakily make your way over to your side of the bed, climb in without a word and watch as your shoulders shake with silent sobs.Â
His mouth opens and closes. He shuts his eyes, jamming his palms into his eyes as he clenches his fists.Â
âI love you,â he whispers finally, and the words seem to carry slowly between your two bodies that to him seem oceans apart, âSo much,â he feels like heâs choking on your silence, itâs thick and settles deep in his throat. Heâs been punched, hit, kicked, beat and thrown before, but none of them have knocked the air from his lungs much like you staying utterly quiet.Â
âIâm doing this for us,â his voice is wavering, why canât you understand that he wants to yell, but wonât, heâd never raise his voice at you, âWhen this is all over weâll go to the house near the ocean,â your heart cracks, âRemember how you wanted to go?â
Gojo watches as your shoulders stop shaking, the only sound in the room becoming your labored breaths.Â
âPlease, darling, please say something. Anything.â
Youâre the only person Gojo would beg to. The only human who could hear his desperate pleas, the way his commanding voice would crack and crumble and shatter all at your mercy. You sniffle quietly, pulling the blanket closer to your chest. You love him, gods above you love him. You don't know yourself how much you love him. Sometimes it frightens you how much you do.
But in this moment, the man behind you was the Lord of the North and not your husband, and so you stayed quiet, letting the only sound that he heard of you be your cries.
â-
You canât seem to find reasons to leave bed most of these days.Â
Every time you look in the mirror, you feel like youâre staring back at a stranger. There are dark circles beneath your eyes, your lips chapped and cracking. Your cheeks have fallen, sullen and flat. Smiling has become a chore, laughing a rare occurrence. As the North was beginning to prepare and brace for the oncoming war, your home was starting to look more like housing quarters for troops rather than the place you used to adore.
You havenât seen Gojo in a while, and each day it seems like heâs pulling away from you. At night, you barely see each other. He comes to sleep far later than you do and wakes up earlier and earlier with each passing day. Sometimes youâre awoken to the bed dipping when he climbs in, other times you pretend to be asleep even when he presses a lingering kiss to the side of your forehead, your fists balling up when he whispers a quiet I love you in your ear before he sleeps.
Itâs not that you donât love him. And you donât fear him, you never have. Sometimes you curse yourself when you donât mutter the words back, but youâre suddenly and crudely reminded that outside your bedroom walls, there were people actively preparing for a war being fought in your names, and it stills you from moving.Â
It was becoming rare sharing a meal with your husband, even rarer to see him anywhere but the counseling chambers, and it no longer felt like it did months ago. Every time you walked past him, you two were so busy and wrapped in your own minds that you didnât even acknowledge each other until it was too late, your neck twisting as he walked on by, and his body turning when you rounded the corner to another hallway.Â
You wonder if this was truly the love that was fated to emerge from this marriage ever since the beginning. That the feelings you felt were mirrored in an act that Gojo was putting up with until this point, if this war was bound to happen and using the arrangement between you and Gojo as a catalyst for the chaos that was to follow.Â
The idea that was slowly planted in your head began to flower, and it caused you to see things for what they werenât. Eventually leading to looking blankly at the wall when he walked into your bedroom one night, hours earlier than when he usually comes, and you donât even spare a glance to him.
âIâm leaving tomorrow.âÂ
Your head slowly turns to where he was standing at the door, eyes gradually making their way upwards to his face, lips parted. You were leaning on the headrest behind you, twisting and turning the ring around your finger.Â
In this moment, you allow yourself to look at Gojo. You take in his disheveled appearance, the white stubble that was dotting across his jaw. A couple months ago you mightâve felt your cheeks heat up at the sight, never expecting for him to look so ruggedly handsome looking like this, but now, all youâre able to think about was how much this cursed war was taking away from time he cherished being able to shave himself clean. He looks worn down, aged, no longer the youthful and cheerful man you remembered. How was this happening? How was any of this real?
You blink, shaking your head a bit as you come back to reality, biting your tongue for a few seconds before you speak.Â
âLeaving?â You finally ask, watching ashe nods, nearing where you were sitting on the bed, leaning down the untie the straps and leather clasps of his boots, letting out a sigh of finally being able to relax as he shrugs his coat off, running a hand through his white strands that seemed to be longer than from the last time you saw him.Â
He nods dimly, his lips pressed into a thin line as he looks you over, his eyes falling when he takes notice of your crestfallen state, the way the light that was in your eyes has seemed to die out.Â
âI have to go rally more allies across the West,â he explains, slowly making his way over to the bed as he drops down on the corner of it, his hand reaching out for yours but you donât move, âYour father has promised us his troops but there are smaller cities scattered across that still need some convincing.â
Your fingers curl around your blanket, eyes pulled together in a furrow.Â
âLet me come,â you tell him but he stares at you for a few seconds, trying to see if you were joking.Â
When he realizes you're being serious he shakes his head, his blue eyes a dark color as he looks away for a second to stare at the wall.Â
âItâs dangerous-ââ
âBut I know the cities!â You cry out, the first time youâve heard your voice be this loud in a while, and it takes him by surprise as well, âI can help! Iâve been sitting here feeling like a duck waiting to be shot! IâŠâ you stop for a second, the stupid tears that have seemed to become a common occurrence burning your eyes.Â
You look away, biting your lip to keep it from shivering, hoping he doesnât come near you.Â
âThis is my fault,â you whisper, âEverything thatâs to come, itâs all my fault. If only I didnâtâŠâ your voice cracks, your chin falling to your chest as your eyes wring shut, wanting to keep everything and everyone away.Â
But Gojo, like always does, is drawn to you like a moth to a flame. You hear the sheets rustle as he moves across the bed and settles in beside you, his tall and lean frame shadowing over your body as you refuse to look at him, not wanting him to see how weak youâve become.Â
You feel one of his hands reach for your jaw, his fingers curling around your ear and holding the back of your head as he gently turns you to face him. Â
You try desperately to keep your eyes somewhere else, focusing on his knees rather than him, but when you feel a tear escape and roll down your cheek, being wiped away by his thumb, you break, barreling yourself into his chest as you cry.Â
His hands circle your body, caging you to him as you feel your chest shake. Itâs painful and it burns, but you canât seem to stop. You can feel his heartbeat ratting against his chest, a faint smell of smoke clinging to his skin.Â
âNone of this is your fault,â he murmurs against your head, âYouâre not to blame for anything.âÂ
âSatoru, I,â your hands curl as they rest on your thigh, a tear catching on the tip of your nose, âIâm s-scared,â you choke, the words slurring on your tongue, âIâm so terrified all the time. ThisâŠthis war, these plans, the strategies e-everyone keeps talking about,â your hand curls against his tunic, gripping into the fabric as if it was tethering you to the earth.Â
Gojo takes in a deep breath, and you feel his lips pressing to the crown of your head, soft and warm. Oh, how you missed his lips.Â
âThereâs nothing to be scared about,â his voice is slightly muffled, but itâs steady and sure, âEverything will be alright.â
But you shake your head, a fresh wave of tears sprouting.Â
âHow do you know?â youâve been asking yourself the same question over and over, âNone of us have even lived through a war, l-let alone fight in one.â
âI,â Gojo sighs, and you imagine the pensive look on his face, âI donât know. I have no idea how any of this is going to go. And,â he pauses, thinking briefly, âIâm scared too. Iâm scared that all of our plans will go to shit and weâll encounter a force we never expected. Everyday I examine different escape routes we should go through, creating different maps that might save us. I donât know what Iâm doing half the time,â he admitted with a solemn laugh, âButâŠbut no matter what, Iâll still come back to you when all of this is over.â
Your breathing shudders, and you raise your head to look at him. Youâre sure you look like an absolute mess, with tears staining your face, youâre constant sniffles to keep your nose under control, the reds of your eyes. But Gojo still smiles, his hands moving to either side of your face, his thumb moving back and forth across your cheeks.Â
âThereâs my girl,â his voice is barely above a whisper, but he sounds proud, his blue eyes lightening up a little bit. You let out a little cry when you see his tender smile, the way he looks at you like youâre the most beautiful person heâs ever seen.Â
âP-promise, promise youâll come back to me,â you say through broken sobs, wiping messily at your cheeks, your palm rubbing harshly against your chin so that the tears donât fall against the sheets, âPromise me that you will come here again.â Â
He nods, his own eyes wavering when he understands just how much this has been tearing you apart. One of his hands moves to cradle your head, bring you closer to his and he rests his forehead against yours with a quiet thump.Â
His nose nudges yours, and his lips inches away from your trembling ones. Your eyes close shut, hands refusing to move away from his sturdy chest.Â
âI, Gojo Satoru, will come back to you,â his voice is clear but heavy as if he intended for his words to travel across the world and through different lifetimes to end up back here, âI promise this to you. As your husband, as your friend,â his voice slightly cracks, âAnd as the man who loves you most ardently.â
You donât give him another second before you pull him a little bit closer by the collar of his tunic to slam your lips against his. You hear him groan instantly from underneath you, but you donât care. Your teeth move cruising against each other, your tears mixing with your spit.Â
Itâs messy but needed, an anchor that youâve so desperately been craving.Â
Gojoâs large hands move from your back to under your ass, cupping the flesh as he grips your thighs, pulling you into his lap as his finger trails upwards to your waist, his favorite spot. His slight stubble scratches against your skin, but youâre surprised to find that you like the feel, like the way he feels.Â
He bites your bottom lip, slipping his tongue past yours when your mouth opens slightly and you moan against him, fingers curling tightly in his white strands of hair, tugging them harshly. It earns a deep groan from him, his fingers digging into the skin of your waist in a desperate attempt to keep himself steady.Â
Your back arches closer, nails raking his scalp as you tilt his head back upwards for your lips to capture his. He moves at your will, slotting himself against you, working in tandem as your chests rise and fall at the same pace.Â
You feel starved, needing to taste him, to feel him. You canât remember the last time youâve kissed him this feverishly, as if youâd die within moments if you didnât have your skin melting against his.Â
The seconds seem to blur together, and before you know it, there was a loud knock at the door. You squeal, almost shoving yourself off of him as the two of you look back to see what it was.Â
âMy, my lord?â The voice behind the door squeaks, most likely a younger soldier, âThereâs been a slight shift in tomorrow's plans. The general wants to speak to you.â He clears his throat, most likely having heard your moans and you feel your cheeks heat up in embarrassment.Â
You look back to Gojo, and see the way his head falls and his hands curl into fists on his thighs.Â
Your hand traces the hot skin of his jaw, your thumb hooking underneath his chin to bring him back up to you.Â
âGo,â you say quietly, a small smile on your face. You try to hide your disappointment, knowing this is more important. Â
Thereâs a storm happening behind his eyes, swirls of blue and gray mixing together as his chest slightly heaves, his cheeks dusted with pink. One of his hands grips your waist, pulling you forward with no force as he kisses you once, twice more.Â
âIâm sorry,â he whispers, kissing your cheeks softly, âIâll come back tonight and Iâll wake you before I leave tomorrow.â
You nod, hoping he knows that youâll be okay, and shift away slightly from his lap so that he can go.Â
âI love you,â he mutters against the side of your head, looking deep into your eyes before he presses his last kiss against your forehead, âSleep well, love.â
Your smile cracks slightly, and you swallow the lump in your throat as you cross out a measly love you most and watch silently as he puts his boats and coat back on and leaves within seconds.Â
You stare at the messed up sheets and then to the door, accepting the fact that this would be your life from now on.Â
â-
Gojo left the next morning, before the sun was in the sky.Â
âItâll only be three weeks at most,â Gojo assures you, and you look up to see his men preparing their horses, throwing saddles across them as they prepare their satchels of food and gear, âTwo if I flatter my way through the cities.âÂ
You giggle a little bit, rolling your eyes, the most you could muster yourself to do and wrap your arms around his neck, pulling him closer to your body.Â
âIâll miss you,â you mutter, hoping nobody could hear the way your voice was barely surviving itâs need to break, âCome back as soon as you can.âÂ
Gojo sprawls a hand across your back, tipping you up by the chin to meet his lips in another kiss. A while ago you might have felt shameful and scandalous for kissing your husband like this out in the open, but everybody was so distracted with their own tasks that they wouldn't bother to look at you right now.
You pull away slightly, cheeks heating when his pupils grow slightly, and place a hand across his sternum, rubbing up and down the vigil of the North that was pinned to his coat.Â
âI will,â he says, pulling you in for a tight embrace as you hug him with as much strength as you have, your cheeks pressed against his shoulder as his chin rests on the top of your head, âIâll be back before you even realize I was gone.âÂ
That was a few days ago, but with how little you already saw him before he left, it felt a little bit true to his words. You were so busy trying to help the war efforts around the estate that missing your husband happened in the quiet moments when you were allowed to have some silence to yourself, or in the late hours of the night when you hugged his pillow close to your chest.Â
When nights would come and you had had your dinner and were making your efforts to sleep, you requested to only have Alina help you get undressed and ready. She was the one you felt closest too, and the only one who never seemed to bombard you with sympathy. And after a grueling day, that was all you needed.
âWould you like some lavender oil?âÂ
You look up from the counter, putting your necklace back in its case as your eyes meet her brown ones in the mirror.Â
âNot tonight, Alina, thank you,â you say and she nods, setting the glass bottle back down as she picks up some of the rose water, native to the North, and begins doting it across your neck, head and wrists.
There was a slight breeze that was wafting in through your open window. Fall was quickly approaching, but you were trying to hold on to the last bits of the cool summer air before the biting winds staked their spot until the next spring.Â
âWould you like me to close the window?â Alina glanced over to the rustling curtains, flowing freely, and you shrugged, taking off your earrings as you placed them down gently on the little plate Gojo had given you as a gift a while ago.Â
âI prefer the breeze,â you reply, wiping your face with a damp cloth, âThank you, though,â you offer her a small smile, one that she reciprocates.Â
Alina finishes up some things, and the two of you work in comfortable silence. She knows just how much you need these little things to help keep you sane, and as much as sheâs been trained to help out her lady in any means possible, as your friend, she lets you do some things alone.
After a few more minutes pass Alina clasps her hands on her hips, and you let out a small giggle, knowing she was done.Â
âI donât see why you need me here,â she grumbles, pushing some hair away from her face and you snort, standing up from your chair as you flick her shoulder gently.Â
âYouâre good company,â you simply say, moving around your room as you go to the little corner where you keep some of your books.Â
Alina pushes the chair back in and makes her way to the door, bidding you a good night before she pauses, looking back at the window.Â
âMy lady?â She says, and you look up from the shelf, glancing over to her. You raise a brow, waiting for her to continue.Â
âI know itâs not my place, but my mother always told me to sleep with the windows closed. You never know how cold the night might get and I donât want to see you waking up with a fever.â
You look back to the window and the rustling curtains and grin, nodding.Â
âIâll close them in a bit,â you tell her and note how her shoulders ease and a smile makes its way onto her face.Â
âGoodnight my lady,â she tells you, and you say the same thing, making sure sheâs all gone before you let the smile drop, your cheeks hurting, and look back to the bookshelf.Â
Youâve seen how worried sheâs gotten as of late regarding your nature, so youâve tried being a little more cheerful around her even if it pains your soul to act like nothings wrong.Â
Your fingers card through different books, reading the spines as you try to find something that might help put you to sleep. Finally you find a title of a book youâve read before, maybe a few years ago, and pull it out, examining the cover.Â
You move around to your bed and place it near your pillow. You fill the glass on your stand with some water from your pitcher, setting down as you go to the vanity to blow out the candles that were lit.Â
There were only a few left, and you just wanted to save the one next to your bed so you could read. You move past the window, going to the corner of the room, blowing the third remaining candle out.Â
You feel the hair on your arm prick up from the sudden rush of cold air, goosebumps trailing in their wake, and you walk back to the window, pushing aside the long drapes as you reach your arms out to find the knobs that would pull them in towards you.Â
Until a sudden force knocks you down to the ground.Â
It takes you half a second to realize that you hadnât tripped on something, and that the reason why your head didnât hit the floor causing a thud to be heard was because something, somebody, was on top of you.Â
A man. Thereâs a man lying on top of you.Â
This canât be happening.Â
You go to scream, but a hand flies to cover your mouth, pinning your legs and wrists down by a heavy leg and their other hand, effectively holding your writhing body still.Â
Your eyes are squeezed shut as you try to move, biting the hand thatâs over your mouth but it doesnât budge. You feel your heartbeat as fast as it ever has against your ribcage, your fingers trying to grab something, anything, that could help you.Â
âIf you make any noise Iâll cut your tongue straight from your mouth, you hear me?â
Your eyes slam open, looking straight at the face hovering above yours.Â
A brute of a man is looking down at you. You yell again, but he presses his hand down even harder, his rough skin meeting your teeth as your voice becomes muffled.Â
Heâs gigantic, looking more like an ogre than a man. His hooked nose and sly lips are pulled into a sleazy smile as he looks down at you, his greasy black hair pulled back behind his ears. His arms are the size of boulders, his legs looking like they were strong enough to push boulders. His teeth are yellow and crooked, and he lets you see them when he talks.Â
You feel something sharp press to your side, and in your frantic state youâre able to wiggle a little bit to tilt your head down to see what it is. Your eyes widen when you see the glimmering dagger, its edge serrated. Its tip was so sharp that you could feel it cutting into your skin and you knew he wasnât pressing as hard as he possibly could.Â
âStay. Still.â The man grunts again, licking his teeth as you shake, shaking your head as your hands open and unopened, not knowing what else to do.Â
âIâm going to move my hands from your mouth,â he says next, slowly and quietly, âThereâs a couple things I need you to do for me. But I swear that if you make a single squeak, any fucking noise, Iâll gut you like a fish, hm?âÂ
Your eyes are shaking, brows pulled taut as you try to move around but to no avail. The knee that was pressing down onto your thigh digs in deeper, his bone searing into your flesh as you whine in pain.Â
âDo you understand?â He whispers in your ear, his hot breath fanning over your skin. The knife is still pointed at your hip, and he presses it just a bit deeper, and youâre sure if he goes any more heâll draw blood.Â
You look at the man, at the deep set scars that run all across his face. You take in the glint that shimmer in his eyes, the pure evil that drips from his grin. You can smell the blood drying on his clothes, and can almost taste iron the closer he gets to you.Â
You want to fight back, but you canât.Â
Your mind races back to those days when you had asked Gojo to let you spar with him, wanting to know how to defend yourself. There were some moments when you felt like you could take him down, but heâd always find a weak spot of yours and bring you tum biking to the ground. But he would always help you up with a gentle smile, apologizing profusely as he kissed your cheeks. This man was far bigger than Gojo, and his smile wasnât kind the way he was. You knew you couldnât overpower him, not in the slightest.Â
So you slowly nod, your tears falling freely from the corners of your eyes, rolling back onto the floors as the man grunts.Â
Slowly and surely, he moves his hand away from your face, still keeping the rest of his body pinning yours. Your lips are trembling, your body almost convulsing as you wait for him to speak.Â
He gives it a second, making sure you werenât going to pull anything before he decides youâre compliant enough, or rather not willing to die, to listen to his orders.Â
âGood job,â he mutters, his voice pricking at your skin like a thousand needles, his greasy smile making you want to hurl, âThereâs three things I need you to do. Nod if you understand.â
You look back at him. He presses the knife into your hip, and your teeth dig into your lip, knowing that he for sure broke skin.Â
Your eyes squeeze shut in pain as you slowly nod.Â
âFirst, from here on out, be as quiet,â his voice is low, âDonât let anybody outside think anything.â
He pushes himself slightly off of you, trying to get a feel of how loud the floorboards creaked. When he was satisfied that they wouldnât make a sound, he moved his hulking body away from yours, carefully standing up.Â
You feel your heart lurch when you see him at his true size, nearly three heads taller than Gojo, and even more packed with muscles.Â
âStand up,â he motions for you to do the same, not until he warns, âSlowly.âÂ
Youâre frozen in place, your arms and legs losing all function. The man looks down at you through his dark stare, seeing that itâs taking you too long, and bends down to loop a hand around your elbow.Â
He drags up upwards like you weigh nothing, your lungs refusing to work as you gasp for air.Â
When you're on your feet, you feel like throwing up, your head dizzy, nose wrinkling at his strong odor that reeks of onions and ale.Â
âWalk over to that table,â he nudges his chin over to the desk that is littered with Gojoâs maps and scrolls and your books, âAnd sit down at the chair.â
You can only stare at him, biting your tongue, hoping this was all a nightmare.Â
But the man just stares back at you, waiting. He flashes you the dagger again, itâs too stained with your blood, and your legs, however weak, seem to work faster than your mind. You feel like a newborn lamb learning how to walk as you somehow make your way over to the table, his presence never leaving from behind your back.Â
Your legs shake as you set yourself down on the wooden chair, tears biting at your cheeks as you wait for his next instructions.Â
Behind you, you hear something rustle. You donât want to look to see what heâs doing, but youâre able to pick out a bag being opened carefully, some papers scratching against each other.Â
It takes a few more seconds but the sounds stop, and suddenly a piece of parchment falls down next to you.Â
âWrite down on a piece of sheet that repeats what is written there,â he tells you, and your eyes dart down to the parchment, tears blurring your vision.Â
âWâŠâ your words are slurring together, and you canât hear your own voice, âWhat?â
Youâre quiet, but the man hears you.Â
He just shoves the parchment closer to your face, saying nothing.Â
Your eyes fall down to the words scattered across the price, black ink staining its yellow color, and you blink your eyes a couple of times to read what it says. The handwriting is foreign to you, something you canât recognize. You donât know how, with everything your mind was going through, you were able to read properly, but you felt your stomach drop when your eyes scanned through the first couple of sentences.Â
My love, with a heavy heart I write to you, but there is no other way to break my thoughts to you. I can no longer sit and watch what you plan to do in my nameâŠyour eyes skim a further but down, the blood youâre willing to spill is unlike what I thought you to be capable of. Youâve become cruel and inhuman, and I refuse to have myself tied to a man that desires death the way you doâŠ
Your mouth drops a little, your jaw slacking when you realize what the note was saying. This was a goodbye letter.Â
I have to leave. I could never, under any godsâ sky, pretend to keep loving a man as barbarous as you.
Your heart stops.Â
âWrite that down girl,â the manâs gruff voice interrupts, âHere.â
He scavenged through the piles of discarded plans and strategies, finding a clean sheet of parchment that was untouched by ink.Â
You shake your head, looking over your shoulder as your tears drop from your chin.Â
âI,â you swallow thickly, trying to force down the vomit that was at the back of your throat, âI canâtâŠwriteâŠâ
The man snorts, his arms crossing over his large chest as he shrugs.Â
âIf you donât write, Iâll gut that girl that you favor so much,â he twists the daggers handle in his large palm, âThe only with the curls. Gods, itâd be a shame though. I might have a taste of her beforeâŠâ
You tune him out, ears filling with water as you realize heâs talking about Alina, your fingers trembling against the wood of the table as you look down at the pre-written note and the blank parchment he had set in front of you.Â
Your mind was blanking as you try to ration whatâs happening.Â
You look a little bit to your left at the pot of ink and the quill Gojo was always scratching away with. Before you can think any other thought, you feel cool metal pressing against your neck.Â
The man is right behind your chair, his daggers blade a breath away from your skin. Heâs holding your jaw in place, forcing your head down at the table.Â
His fingers are rough and calloused, stained with blood and dirt, and you gasp slightly, eyes blurring once again as you turn still.Â
âWrite.â He whispers thickly in your ear.Â
You donât move, and the dagger presses down, your lips falling open in a silent cry as you feel it cut through some skin, blood beginning to stain your nightdress.Â
Mindlessly, your hand moves to the ink and quill. You feel like you've left your body as your fingers grasp the quill, dipping it into the little pot, and set it down to the paper.Â
You feel like youâve left your own self as you look back to the note, chewing your lips raw as you write down the first word. The dagger is still against your throat, unrelenting as you begin to write. You donât know how none of your tears have yet to stain the paper, but you donât what the stranger would do if that were to happen.Â
A part of you blacks out when you write, your eyes open but not understanding anything in front of you no matter how hard you try.
Your quill suddenly stops, and you feel the man leaning in behind your shoulder, the dagger loosening away from you as he lifts the two pieces of parchment up.Â
You donât know when you finished, or what you write, but in the silence that it takes for him to read yours through, you get the grasp that you mustâve done something correctly because he seems satisfied, setting your version down on the table.Â
He steps away from you, and you watch from the corner of your eyes as he takes the original piece to one of your candles, holding it over the flames as it catches fire. He watches as it burns, the ashes falling into his other hand. When itâs all burnt up, he scatters it out the window, the wind doing its job as it takes any remains of what it was away from here.Â
He looks back at you with a smile.Â
âLast thing,â
Your head sways.Â
âFill this bag,â he holds up an empty satchel, âFill it with things youâd take if you were to run away.â
You blink slowly at him, your mouth going dry.Â
You canât speak, but he can tell youâre confused.Â
âWe need to make it seem like, well,â he shrugs, his lips pursed together, âThat you wrote that note and ran away. Pick out some clothes, jewelry, and coins. Make the room messy.â
Your heart beats slowly in your chest when you start to understand what it was he was asking you to do.Â
He holds up his weapon, its edges shining red with your blood, and he points it to the door.Â
âI know youâd hate to hear her scream,â he says, and you dimly nod.Â
You set the quill down gently on the table, moving carefully from your chair as you walk towards his outstretched hand. Your fingers tremble as you take it from him, walking slowly towards your dresser.Â
Heâs right behind you, the knife pointed at your waist so that you donât think of doing anything, and you quietly open the door, grabbing some hoods, slips, common clothes, nightwear and undergarments. You shoved it in until the bag was nearly full.Â
You did as you were told, taking the rest of your clothes and scattered it across the ground, throwing some things onto your bed.Â
He grunted behind you, most likely a little surprised with how compliant you were.Â
You drift to your vanity, shoving some necklaces and earrings in the satchel, not wanting to take all because it was actively killing you to do this.Â
âThatâs good,â the man says after a couple minutes and you pause, your back still to him.Â
You set the satchel down and turn slowly around, hoping this would be enough. That your night was done and that he would let you go.Â
âOh, and,â his eyes drop down to your empty hands, pouting the tip of the blade to your finger, âLeave the ring.â
Your eyesight goes blurry.
You feel lightheaded, gripping into the edge of the table as you heave for air. Leave the ring? Leave? Leave?
âWe donât have all night,â he explains, making that his reasoning for why he so suddenly takes your hand, his large fingers circling around yours as he roughly yanks off the piece of jewelry, throwing it next to some other pieces you had lying on the table.Â
You can only stare blankly at it as he moves around, stare as the gold glimmers in the soft candlelight. It looks the same way it did the first time you saw it, when Gojo had placed it on your finger when he was saying your vows. It was a simple ring, a gold band that didnât have any stones on it. Gojo later explained that while he had told you earlier it was usual something he had picked out, his mother had gifted it to him.Â
You feel a force hit the back of your head and suddenly, everything goes black.Â
â-
Waking up hurt.Â
You blink once, twice and then for a final time before you feel like you can see accurately again. Your head was throbbing, a dull pain at the back of your skull. You go to rub it, but notice that your hands are bound together by rope.Â
Coming to your senses you realize that the rope wasnât the only problem. The wobbling motion you first had wasnât from your stomach ache, but because you were rocking back and forth on a horse.Â
You sit up a little bit in shock, but the motion causes you to wince, your body sore and aching.Â
âI wouldnât move if I were you.âÂ
That voice.Â
So it wasnât a nightmare.Â
The wall that you felt behind your back wasnât a wall, but was in fact the same man who had forced his way into your room at night, made you write that letter, packed your things and leaveâŠ
Leave home.Â
All around you was a sprawling field, no sign of life from as far as you could tell. You had no idea how long you were unconscious, or how long you had been on horseback, but the North usually didnât get grass to grow this tall seeing how the cold winters usually killed them. There was a breeze, but it wasnât as biting as it should be.Â
You were glad to see that your mouth was wrapped shut, but that also put a strike of fear through you. If the man wasnât afraid of you screaming, then there surely wouldnât be anybody around to save you.Â
You were alone.Â
A part of you was on the verge of breaking down, screaming until you coughed up blood and your throat became raw. But you knew that if you wanted to stay alive, if you wanted to go come, you had to keep onto your wits. It was either that or you froze, not moving, becoming a shell of a human, the same way you were that night when this all happened. And you had seen what it could do, had seen how your own body would betray you, and you vowed to never let that happen again.Â
âHow long has it been?âÂ
Your own voice shocks you. Your throat is dry, seeing how you havenât opened it in a while, and the sentence comes out like a croak. You swallow some spit, hoping it would help with the scratchiness you were feeling. The horse moved slowly through the pasture, the sun shining but not beating down on your face in an unforgivable way.Â
The man clicked his tongue against his teeth, his hands holding onto the reins.Â
âNearly six days,â he says gruffly, and your eyes widen, not expecting for it to have been almost a week that youâd been out, âThought Iâd killed you.âÂ
Five days?Â
You try to do the math in your head. It had been almost six days since Gojo had left when the man came into your room, and with these five days, it would be almost a week since Gojo was gone from home. If the travel West took as long as it did for you, then heâd be almost there by now. But you didnât know how mail would travel, or how long it would take till heâd come back home to figure out what the problem was.Â
Depending on which direction the man was going, it could take weeks until they found you. Fields like this werenât uncommon in the North, but the weather wasnât. It reminded you a bit of home, but Western nature was dry and glaringly hot. Even in the fall, youâd still break a sweat after being in the sun.Â
And given how prepared this man was, he surely wouldn't be heading there, most likely knowing that Gojo was there as well. You had seen enough maps and heard enough talk around the counsel to know that it would take almost two weeks to travel Westward, but almost three weeks to arrive in the Eastern nations.Â
Judging by the landscape you had seen on paper and that youâre surveying now, this man was taking you somewhere East.Â
âDid the king send you?â You ask, your head dipping downwards so that you could angle your ears to hear him better.Â
He pauses, and you wonder if youâd asked the wrong question, if he was going to make you suffer in some way for crossing the line. You still couldn't work out his motive. If he was truly sent by the king, then why wouldnât he have killed you in your room? Why go through the hassle of making you seem like you had run away?
Killing you and showing the North your body would send a greater message than whatever this was. Taking you without making it seem like an abduction was strange, even for the South, and so you desperately wanted to know what it was that had put you in this situation.
âA friend of his did,â the man finally says, and when he falls quiet, you realize that this was all he was going to say.Â
So he was from the South. And he didnât seem like heâd be a lying man, heâd have no reason for it. The more you thought about it, it made more sense that the king didnât send direct orders to abduct you. But that made you furrow your brows in confusion. If the king was ready to wage war, why would an abduction be something he wanted hidden?Â
âWhy didnât you kill me?â you ask after a beat of silence, your body swaying in tandem with the horse. You could feel your dried tears crusting near your eyes, your lips battered, iron coating your tongue the more you spoke, causing the wound to open up.
âI will, but not here.âÂ
You bite your cheek, your hands shaking.Â
âWill you take me up to your king to make a spectacle out of me?â You try to keep your voice from wavering, from showing him any signs of fear.Â
The man chuckles, spitting to the road.Â
âIâll kill you somewhere where thereâs a lot of trees, hide your body so that nobody can find it,â he explains, and you feel your heartbeat in the palms of your hands, âMake it seem like you ran away.âÂ
You try not to let your lips tremble, instead, you try to piece the clues he was giving you together. If the king truly wanted to make it seem like you were running away, then it means that he would want your spot as Lady of the North to appear vacant. He would want Gojo to think that you didnât care for him anymore, and that you wanted out of this marriage, which would make room forâŠÂ
His daughter.Â
But if the king wanted his daughter to marry into the Gojo family, you wonder why he didnât do this whole abduction in the first place. You sigh deeply through your nose, looking down at your hands, your fingers moving around slightly but to no avail. While youâre trying to see if there was any wiggle room, a thought runs through your head.
The king wasnât expecting thisâŠ
You wonder if perhaps the king promised war in a way of bluffing, or hoping that Gojo would terminate the marriage and take on the princess to avoid any trouble. This wasnât his first plan, you decide, but him trying to save the skin of his teeth. He wasnât expecting the North to retaliate, to declare a war of their own. He didnât see Gojo carrying this much for his arranged bride, and didn't think that the young lord would rather die than marry another woman. But the king underestimated Gojo, and sent this man to answer for his mistake.Â
If it seemed like you found Gojo repulsive, that you no longer loved him, then he could search all he wanted to, but if he never found you, or your body, then he would come to the eventual conclusion that you had run away. Either way, this would make it so that he would call off the war. Maybe in attempts to fix the now shattered relationship between the two nations, a marriage between Gojo and the princess might actually take place.
Your hopes deflate, knowing the letter you were forced to write might also be more realistic than some Southern scribes realized. With the way you had argued countless times with Gojo over the chance of ending the possibilities of war, he might read it as an actual goodbye.Â
The thought makes you sick.Â
So, you decide to busy yourself with trying to find an escape option.Â
Your wrists were chafing with how tightly the rope was tied, but the knot around it was tied in a way that seems to have shifted in the days you had been riding. The man behind you is tall, but sitting down, he can only see above your head, and heâd have to force himself up to peer down at your lap.Â
Slowly, over the span of a few minutes, youâre able to position the rope closer to the bottom of your palm, your thumb and pointer finger reaching for the knot. A small smile graces your face when you're able to pinch it between the two fingers.Â
You stop your movements, not wanting to make anything obvious, and then start back up after a couple minutes of silence passed.Â
With the knot now closer to your finger, you begin picking at it with your nail. You know your nail is dull and cut through it, but you think that if you nudge at it enough, you might be able to create a small opening that would allow you to slip your pointer finger through it and unravel it.Â
âI think it would be fair to share your name,â you say, not wanting the man to think anything of your silence, and you begin to execute your plan, fiddling away with the rope with your finger as you raise your head up, not wanting to keep your stare directed at your lap, looking ahead at the field.Â
Wind blows through your body, ruffling the nightdress that you were still wearing. The man at least had some decency to put a cloak over you, hiding your body from being entirely bare. The more you looked at the field, the more it reminded you of the one that surrounded the Gojo estate. You blink and see him sitting there, his back on the grass, an arm resting behind his head, his white hair sprawled out as he held you close to his chest, telling you stories from his childhood. You blink again and see nightfall, see him with his tunic off, telling you about the scar on his torso. You see him professing his feelings, telling you how much he loved you. You blink again and see the field, your nose twitching slightly.
âMy name?â The man repeats with a slight chuckle, most likely shaking his head in disbelief. Out of all the people heâs taken, out of all of the people heâs been sent out to kill, youâve been the weirdest behaving out of all of them.
You nod, your finger working away at the knot, and you cough to cover up the noise when you make a particularly loud scratch.Â
âMy name changes based on the man who hires me,â he says after a minute, and you almost want to look back at him in confusion.
âWhat was the name you gave to the employer who sent you out to find me?â You ask, trying to wiggle some fingers around, bracing your thighs around the horse, trying to keep yourself balanced and upright.Â
The man breathes deeply through his nose, as if he was contemplating telling you. Thereâs no reason not to tell you, if his plan is to kill you anyways. But you plan to escape, and you want to know the name of the man who put you through this hell.
âToji,â he finally says, and you commit it to memory, your mouth falling in the shape of the name, âBut Iâll change it for my next employer.âÂ
You go to say something else, but almost let your disguise slip when you feel your finger make its way through the knot. You move it in circles, moving it across, and slowly you feel the knot begin to unravel. You keep your hands pressed tightly together, but in a few seconds the rope has become undone.Â
You stare at it in shock, not expecting for it to take so little time to unravel, but you look ahead again, shifting a little bit as you begin to think about what to do next.Â
You can feel the sheath of his dagger digging into your back. You remember how it looked when you first saw it, and can confidently say that this was the thing that was there. It was large, but given how large his weapon was, you werenât surprised to find it had an even larger cover.Â
You didnât know how fast you could move, nor how fast he could. You didnât know if there was a latch or specific way to take the weapon out, but as far as you could remember, that was the only weapon he seemed to operate with. If you were able to harm him in some way and get him off of the horse, you might have a chance of escaping.
Though there was the obvious challenge, he knew how to fight far better than you. Whatâs to say that you get the dagger but he doesnât get it out of your hands even faster? And if you did manage to wield it, how fast would it take for him to understand what had happened, how fast his reflexes were? If heâs had multiple employers before, then he must be skilled in his trade, putting you at an immense disadvantage.Â
But you knew that if you didnât try, youâd die at his hands. You knew youâd rather die fighting and on your own accord than at the merciless dagger of a stranger who was paid to kill you.
You let the silence grow, wanting the man to think that you had fallen asleep. You let your head hang down, your chin to your chest, and you slowly, quietly and gently begin the snake one hand out from the ropes.Â
The man grumbles to himself from time to time, spitting to the side every now and then, but from what you can tell, is still unsuspecting.Â
You know itâs a matter of seconds that gives you the advantage, and that any slight fumble or mistake will be catastrophic. You tell yourself that you have to twist your back quickly, pull the weapon out with your right hand, and strike him through the chest. You donât know if one strike would be enough to take him down, but it would be enough to have you force him off the horse and take the animal for yourself.
You breathe deeply through your nose, calming your nerves.Â
And then, you turn.Â
Youâre met with his face, your hand reaching for the weapon, and see the way his eyes slowly fall down to your fingers, and then to you, but youâve calculated his brutish daftness enough to know that a moment of surprise would be his doom.
It doesnât take much effort to get the dagger, but his hand quickly shoots for your throat, his fingers wrapping around your skin as he squeezes tight, restricting your airways. You choke, trying to cough, but with the way heâs seated on the horse you know you canât falter. Your hold on the weapon weakens, but you still drive it forward, and are met with the satisfying sound of his groan.Â
His hand around your throat falls, and you pull out the dagger only to drive it further up his chest, into his ribs.
The man, Toji, grips the handle, but you push with as much force as you can muster at his shoulders. You wonder if heâs ever had people fight back, if heâs ever dealt with somebody striking him hard enough to draw blood.Â
With the way youâre positioned; your dress and robe still underneath him, he takes you down with him. You fall to the ground with a hard thud, wincing at the pain that shoots again through your head. Your vision has gone blurry again, but you can make out the man stumbling on the ground, grasping at his chest in shock.Â
You place your hands on the ground, forcing yourself up. Your head is spinning, swaying up and down, but you know you have to get back up on that horse.Â
Heâs shouting at you, saying something but you stand up, almost falling back down with how your legs are shaking, but you hold yourself upright by the horse's saddle. Youâre shocked that it hasnât been spooked away, but donât find time to question why.Â
Youâve ridden enough times before to know how to haul yourself up, but itâs a trying effort that takes a couple swings. The man is still on the ground, clutching at his wounds, and you canât revel in your victory just yet.Â
When youâre up on the horse you feel your vision start to clear up a bit and your ears stop ringing.Â
You look down to the man, trying to make out what it was he was saying.Â
â...canât go back,â he spits, blood coating his lips, staining them red as he coughs out more, âtheyâd never take you back.â
You stare at him, dazed.Â
âYou committed treason,â his voice is hoarse, and he tries to grab at your foot but you kick it away, âThat letter? Donât you remember?â he smiles darkly, and his teeth as red, âAnd if you go back, the king,â he chokes, spitting out some blood, but he chuckles, a mad look in his eyes, âThe king would kill every single person you care about. Heâll rip the throats from your maids, send an army of unkillable men to kill y-your dear lord.âÂ
You look down, his words slowly making their way into your brain.Â
The letter.Â
You remember now. It wasnât just a goodbye, but a confession of even further betrayal. You had denounced the North and its power, had said that the Lord of the North was an enemy of every state.Â
And even if you did go back to prove that you were forced to write it, whatâs to say that his words werenât correct? If he was able to spy on you long enough to know your schedule, your maids, when to attack, then the South was truly capable of sending in more assassins. And Gojo might be able to take them, but what about Alina? What if the king decided to target Gojoâs parents, your friends, people youâve come to care deeply about?Â
The man grins cruelly when he sees the way you begin to understand his words, the threat behind them.Â
The man wasnât standing up not because he was weakened, but because he knew that even if he didnât kill you, youâd wind up dead anyways. He knew youâd give up and let him go through with his initial plan. Because in that case, only youâd be dead. But you returned back to the Gojo estate and would have you killed, alongside everyone else you loved.Â
ButâŠbut if you ran, ran away to somewhere hidden, it might be avoided. The war, the bloodshed, everything. You could actually be doing something good.Â
He laughs, blood falling from his lips, staining the floor when he sees the tears fall down your cheeks. You go to wipe them away, but it doesnât matter anymore. In that moment youâve made up your mind, have seen that there was no other way.Â
Youâd be leaving behind the man you loved in return for saving his life, as well as everyone else's.Â
You think about his smile, the way his lips felt against your skin when he kissed you goodbye. You think about the way he laughs, a hearty sound that makes you laugh in turn. You think about the warmth you felt when wrapped in his embrace, the way he smelled like cinnamon after spending time with you in the kitchens. Your heart churns when you think about the love you hold for him, just how much it drived your everyday life. How youâd do anything to save him, even if it wasnât a lot. You think about Gojo, and how for a little moment in time, you truly had the world in your hands. How he would do the same if the roles were reversed, knowing that the way you feel for him is just as intense as how much he feels for you.
And you finally think about how leaving might preserve those little things, even if not for your experience. If you were to disappear, this might all be forgiven. And that was a price you decided there that you had to pay.Â
You turn away from him, and maybe under different circumstances you might have gloated at the confusion that takes over his face, not knowing why you werenât stepping down.Â
With shaking fingers and a shattering heart you look ahead, kicking the side of the horse as you send it running. You could hear his yells from behind you, calling for you to come back, but you kept repeating in your head that this was the only way.
Your eyes were blurring with tears from just how fast the wind was hitting your face, your cheeks and nose growing cold. You leaned forward, holding onto the reins with all the strength you had.Â
Please forgive me Satoru, your mind begged, please forgive me.
â
âMiss?âÂ
You dream of a sound, a soft, gentle sound. It circles around you like a mothers tender care, making the coldest parts of your soul warm slightly. You smile a little bit when you imagine it again.
âMiss?â
A shower of icy water, colder than anything youâve ever felt, washes over you, and your eyes sprout wide open, your mouth open in a loud gasp as you sit up as fast as you can, your chest heaving up and down with labored breaths. Your fingers jump to your face, trying to wipe off the freezing feeling away, and blink rapidly, trying to get a grasp of where you were.Â
âMiss?âÂ
Your head swivels to the voice, and you feel your eyes burning. The voice is overshadowed with the burning sun behind them, but they crouch down over you, shoving you with a little force. You blink again, trying to make the spots go away.Â
A woman, you think. Not Gojo.Â
The last thing you remember was going to sleep, your stomach empty after multiple days of night finding any food, shivering your soul away as you curled up. The horse that you had stolen was set free a couple days ago after you felt bad for not being able to provide anything for it to eat or drink. Knowing that it had left somewhere for itself puts you in a better state of mind.Â
You couldnât remember how many days it had been since you had run away. You lost track after the twentieth night. You had no map to guide you, nobody you trusted to tell you where to go. You walked around with a hood over your head, looking through different towns and villages, scrapping around for their garbage. You were running both from the man that had been sent to kill you, but your old life as well. You didnât know if Gojo believed the letter, if he had sent people out to look for you. You knew you just had to get as far away from the North as possible, even if it meant you die trying.
After a few days of doing this, your feet had given out, marked with blisters and scraps, and you fell in your spot, sleeping near a tree as you let the exhaustion finally settle deep in your bones. You remember closing your eyes, thinking of the time when Gojo woke you up with sweets from the bakery you adored. You could smell the sugar beneath your nose, your fingers itching to grab one, your mind not able to tell what was imagination and reality anymore. You would wager that hunger was making you do this, but you couldnât care anymore.
You can only look at her, forgetting the words needed to form a proper sentence.Â
âAre âye alright?â She asks you finally, and you can slowly begin to make out the crease in her face and the color of her eyes. You can see the wrinkles that adorn her forehead and cheeks, all scrunched up together in worry as she looks down at you.
Your hands pat themselves across your body, trying to make sure you werenât dead. It had been a while since you had spoken to someone, especially when they werenât throwing sticks at your head to get you to stop looking through their discarded piles of vegetables.Â
You swallow thickly.
âCan âye hear me?â She asks louder, bending down a little closer to you as she rests her hand on your forehead.Â
She doesnât seem too old, most likely a few years older than your father, but you feel stricken by her appearance. A part of you wonders if you truly have died and this was the afterlife; an old lady taking care of you.Â
But with how hard sheâs jamming her finger into your ribs it makes you think otherwise.Â
âAre âye hungry darling?â She continues to talk, her gray brows pinching together as she glances over your frail appearance, âWould âye like something to eat?â
Your eyes widen slightly and she takes note of it.Â
A small smile makes its way onto her face as she eases back upwards.Â
âMy husband and I own a small tavern,â she says, and with the sun framing her head she looks like a divine power, âIâll take âye there.â
You stare at her outstretched hand, look at her fingers, at the way theyâre reaching out to you. You canât remember the last time somebody offered you help, or looked at you like you were more than a common thief. Youâd cry if there was any water left in your system.Â
But slowly you raise your hand, holding hers as she heaves you up. You show her your feet, and she tells you not to worry. She sits you on the back of her donkey, telling you that the animal looks stronger than youâd think.Â
You donât have any will to argue, letting the old woman, who told you to call her Miss Murray, guide you and the donkey through a dirt road. You sway in and out of consciousness, blinking to find the scenery changed from what you last remembered.Â
Miss Murray talks to you, but you don't have any energy to respond. She checks behind her shoulder sometimes to make sure you were still alive, and would only look back to the road when she was satisfied you were.Â
It takes nearly another thirty minutes before you start seeing little homes begin to appear from over the hill. Thereâs a town in the distance, one that you see is bordering a vast blue ground.Â
The ocean?
You blink to make sure you were hallucinating.Â
You were only aware of larger cities that bordered the ocean, but this was a small little town at most. The roads were dirt and unpaved, the homes made of wood and layers of hay. The cities you were aware of were far richer, their structures made of sturdy stone and glass. And you knew that despite your delirious travels, you hadnât rerouted and gone back up North, the only other place you knew that had cities near the water.Â
âHome,â Miss Murray says with a content sigh and you look at her, your eyes slightly squinted in confusion.Â
You swallow some spit, trying to wet your mouth.Â
âWhere,â your voice sounds foreign to you, and even the woman looks back in surprise when she hears you trying to speak. Your fingers are at your throat, wanting to have your voice sound normal.Â
âWhere a-are we?â You finally get out, and the woman smiles gently at you.Â
âAs far east as âye can get,â she replies and you look back to the ocean. The water is shining off of the sun, the cold air thatâs biting at your skin is a reminder of the winter thatâs about to come.Â
The color reminds you of a pair of eyes, the same eyes you often thought about before you went to sleep, not knowing if youâd wake up.Â
âIâd wager yer a far way from home dear, no?â
Your body sways with the donkey's gentle movements, and your mind is slow. You know you need food and water, but her question isnât one that reminds you of this. Itâs a cut that runs deep through your aching soul, one that hurts to admit.Â
So you only give her a little nod, one that she seems to understand quickly.Â
âDâye plan to stay here?â Her gray curls frame her face in a nice way, her plump cheeks pink and soft.
You look to the water and then to the town. Itâs a far distance from the North, and hidden enough that nobody would recognize you or find you. Itâs surrounded by a forest, a densely thick mass of trees that stretches as far as the eye can see. The town is quaint, at most a few hundred people inhabiting it. Even if the news of your runaway had heard their ears, it was doubtful that theyâd recognize you. Especially now, that even without a proper mirror youâre sure your appearance has changed drastically.
âYes,â you mutter, your throat raw and unused.Â
She hums, pulling you carefully down the grassy hill and closer towards the busting town. People were walking and shouting to one another, carrying trays of breads and pastries, flowers and fabrics from one place to the next.Â
âIâll fix âye up something to eat when we get to the tavern,â she promises, having surely heard your eager stomach, but you shake your head slowly in a form of protest.Â
âNo, no coin,â you tell her, your eyes falling down in embarrassment, âI donât haveâŠany coin,â you say slowly, your tongue heavy in your mouth.Â
Miss Murray looks at you for a second before throwing her head back and laughing.Â
âDear, Iâm sure âye need that food more than I need that coin.â
Your heart beats a little faster, your eyes glimmering slightly.Â
You want to tell her why youâre like this, that you werenât this way a few months ago. That you had a husband who you cared very deeply for, people who you loved helping. You want to tell her that you would give her all the coins you and your name if you could, but you bite your tongue from doing so.Â
You no longer were the Lady of the North. You were married to Gojo Satoru, and you had no title, no coin, no amount to your name. But you still had respect and dignity, knowing you couldnât lose every shred of yourself while trying to stay alive.Â
âIâd like t-toâŠpay you back,â you stammer out, âI want to pay you back, please,â
You watch as Miss Murray pauses, the donkey halting its movements as your body lurches forward slightly.Â
You watch silently as she observes your face, looks at the cracks in your skin, the stained clothes you were wearing, and your lack of proper hygiene. She feels something when looking at you, something that wasnât right. Thereâs a certain stubbornness, a fight in your eyes, one that somebody only gets after surviving for so long.Â
She knows you wonât back down, especially after youâve had something proper to eat.Â
ââYe need a job, no? Some coin?â She finally asks, and you look down at your torn up clothes and your bones fingers.Â
You look back up to her and nod.Â
She thinks for another moment before starting her walk again.Â
ââYe can pay me back by working for the tavern,â her fingers curl around the donkey's rein as she controls it through a winding road, âAye, weâre in constant need of firewood. It will make us even for this meal, and every day after that Iâll pay âye for yer help. Deal?â
You feel a little light shine down, maybe from the gods as she turns her head to look at you, raising a brow as she waits for your answer.Â
For the first time in a while, you feel your lips quirk upwards, a small, miniscule grin on your face. Miss Murray smiles at the sight.Â
You nod slightly before you murmur a quiet, âdeal.â
ââ
Miss Murray took you to her tavern and fixed you a large meal, something even your old self would gawk at if served at the estate.Â
And she introduced you to her husband, the other keeper. She told him that she found you and knew you were willing to work, to which he took one look at you and decided she wasnât going to budge on her decision.Â
The old man showed you after a week of rest what it was you had to do. He demonstrated how to use an axe, how to cut up the logs in a way that would fit into the tavern's fireplace. He showed you which trees would be easiest for you to cut down, and which ones to avoid.Â
The old man told you that his previous lumberjack had left town in search of a new life, and with how strenuous the job was, he couldnât find anybody to do it eagerly in the short amount of time he needed. His son, who you slowly became familiar with, would do a majority of the workload, meaning youâd just have to bring in the smaller branches and twigs that kept the fire going throughout the night.
Miss Murray also showed you an old shack they had been using to store some equipment, saying that you could stay here for as long as you liked as long as you cleaned it out yourself. It was a little way away from the tavern, but still close enough that you wouldnât have to drag the logs for a great distance. You were near trees and a few homes scattered around you as well so that you werenât isolated. She told you she wouldâve given you someplace nicer, but this was all she had.Â
It takes a while for this strange new routine to become normal for you, but you quickly decide that chopping wood and lugging it around beats the hunger and cold you felt for weeks before you found this little town. That the motions almost became therapeutic, and offered you a peace of mind, letting yourself try to forget about your previous life, your husband, Gojo, and focus on getting your job done.Â
You get the old shack as clean as you can, pleasantly surprised to find that underneath all the rubble and blankets there was a fireplace with a chimney still intact. You set a little bed up for yourself in the corner on the floor, made out of multiple sheets all piled on top of each other (all borrowed from Miss Murray) and a pillow that she had given you.Â
You never told Miss Murray of where you were running from, who you were running from. You didnât tell her that you were married or that you were from the North. Though she asked about why you ran, you never gave her a clear answer. It hurt thinking about him, let alone voicing the fact that you had left a loving husband in hopes of sparing thousands of people their lives. Some days, the pain was so numbing that you didnât know how to move. You would hear his voice in your thoughts, could see his smile when you closed your eyes. In these moments you wondered if he misses you as much as you missed him. If he still slept in the same bed, or had his room completely changed. Did he get rid of your books, your oils, your clothing? A part of you hopes he did, hoping that he didnât have to be cursed with the memory of you after what you had done. The more time passed, you wondered if he had decided to forget about you, if the thought of you was something he decided was better hidden rather than called upon.
Slowly, you began to turn the shack into your home, delivering the firewood as your daily routine, and made the town that bordered the ocean somewhere that you considered safe.Â
But each night that passed and you went to sleep you dreamt of your old home, your old bed, the strong arms that wrapped around you, and you woke up, pretending the tears that had drenched your pillow werenât there.Â
Though you knew that after a while, when the talks of the Northern soldiers died down, that you had to move on. And when Miss Murray excitedly knocked on your door, a month later, telling you that the war had been called off, you offered her a gentle smile, knowing that you had done the right thing. She showed you the papers that were making their way across the kingdoms, the ones that said the North had agreed to pull their forces out from near the Southern border, releasing their final statement of neutrality. You skimmed the page, your heart hammering when you read that The North credits their Lord for the sudden decision, claiming that after months of searching for his missing wife with no luck, he agreed that continuing war efforts were barbarous and unnecessary.
Your vision goes blurry for a moment.Â
He had been searching for you? For nearly six months?
It had been almost half a year, if you had done the math correctly, since you were first informed that a war would be happening. Six months of hardship, pain, tears, blood and half of your soul to end it all. Nobody in your little town knew of what you did, and you knew to keep it that way. Hiding your true nature was safe, no matter how much it stung when you realized that the North had most likely decided to forget you. That night you stayed in your little cabin while everybody was in the square celebrating and crying, not knowing what else to do. They were partially tears of joy, but mainly an accumulation of guilt and longing, wondering why your absence was what was needed to end a war.
Slowly, that pain began to seep into your bones, but you knew that you must go on with your life if you ever wanted to make it worth it. The days and nights turned into weeks, which then turned into months, and after some time, you no longer considered yourself the old Lady of the North. You melted into this life, and pretended that this was what you were destined to live from the start. You cut wood, collected pieces of dry bush and twigs to help keep the fire going at Miss Murrayâs tavern. On the days when they didnât need any fire wood, you helped her and her husband out with food and serving drinks. When she wasnât busy, you found yourself listening to her talk, filling your silent moments with the gentle-hearted lady.
When a year had passed since you came to this town, you let yourself forget about everything. Everything your mind began to tuck away, all but for the lingering ache that longed for the man you loved so many moons ago.
â
Winters in a town near the ocean was something you never experienced until last year, and this year you knew how to prepare yourself.
The North was notoriously known for its freezing winters, but this town could rival it, youâd wager coin on this fact. The lakes in the woods nearby would freeze, snow piling on the ground, reaching a little bit below your knees in some areas. The ground was sometimes slick with ice, and if you didnât have a careful eye to catch it youâd often come tumbling down, your cheeks heating in embarrassment when people nearby would laugh.
Last winter you had barely gotten on your own two feet before it had hit, but Miss Murray helped you out as much as she could. She spared some meat cakes from the tavern, bringing you what was left of their bread when the night was over. She lended you some of her old winter clothes, ones that she had outgrown, and you took it appreciatively. There were some nights you were sure youâd freeze to death, and other mornings when you werenât sure you werenât going to wake up. But you reminded yourself of all that you had been through, everything that you had survived, and pushed to open your eyes. So, in these past months, much like others in the town did, you prepared for this icy season, knowing this year you had to learn on your own.Â
You stocked up on breads and pastries in a corner of your home which was always keen on never staying warm. You kept jars of jams, pickled vegetables and potatoes near the breads, somewhere dark and away from the morning sun. You learned from other townspeople how to prepare for when the cold settled in your home, how to fight it off late into the night. You watched the baker as he explained how to keep your bread from going bad, and how to store it properly. When you were content with the amount of food you had accumulated over the summer and fall months, you then prepared your clothing.
You had learned over trial and error to begin with wrapping your hands up once with some gauze (this would also prove to help once you were using the axe and looking through the shrubbery for things that could easily burn, seeing that it provided a buffer zone) and a thick pair of gloves that Miss Murray knit for you. You always had a fire running in your own fireplace, tending to it from the moment you woke up till late in the night when you went to sleep. The tavern needed its delivery each night, so until then, when you werenât chopping, you either bundled up with a couple blankets or walked through the town, looking through the bakery and small bookshop (those two stores always were toastier than the rest).
If you had some spare change youâd buy a couple of loaves of bread and see if there were any old books the bookkeeper was going to throw out, and in between your free time, this seemed to be the best way to go about the freezing months instead of wasting away in your little cabin.
When night came, you hauled the wood, leaves and twigs into the wheelbarrow Miss Murray had lended to you and headed for the tavern, making sure your scarf was tied around your neck multiple times before you left the warm retrieve of your home.
It was only a ten minute walk from where you were to the inn, and if you hurried enough you could finish it in almost eight minutes. The colder it got, the slower your joints would work, but you also reminded yourself that the faster you got there, the faster youâd be met with the tavern's overwhelming and comforting warmth. You had the hood of your cloak around your head, keeping your ears from freezing and your scarf wrapped tightly around your neck. It was hard pushing the handcart through the snow, but you had learned where to go over the past weeks, which roads were more forgiving.
It had become clockwork as you neared the oak doors, the windows lit orange from the amount of candles inside. You could smell the meat roasting and see the smoke from the brick chimney as you neared it. You were already hearing the loud boisterous laughter from inside, some from town natives, some from travelers making a stop at the place for the night. You knew to walk around back, follow the track that led to the stables and ultimately the smaller door that would lead inside the kitchen, open it with the key Miss Murray had given you. You make a note of a couple of men standing near the horses, the usually empty rooms now filled with the animal. They were most likely tending to them, trying to keep them warm.  Youâre greeted with the familiar sound of the bustling kitchen; the cooks yelling at the other cooks about what to get ready, the loud roar of the fire, the sounds of knives chopping away their vegetables and meats. You can smell the usual pies and stews they made nearly every night. This night seems to be their specialty of chicken pie with potato gravy soup. If there was a moment you could slip away and taste some, you reminded yourself to do so.
Glancing around the large room you take in the sight of the visitors of the night. There are a few wooden beams that restrict your vision, but you donât need eyes to know just how packed it is. The sounds inside are even louder than the ones you heard walking near the place, and youâd wager that there are far more people staying here than usual. Youâd guess that with the recent and abundant snowfall, some travelers were forced to re-route, and by the looks of it, you see far more strangers than familiar faces.
But you donât let that distract you, walking over to the fireplace as you crouch down, making sure your cloak and skirt werenât bunched up under your boots. You set the cart down near the fireplace, taking your gloves off as you held it near the heat for a few seconds. The gloves did a great job with keeping the cold from your hands, but they limited your mobility, and when you had to unload the logs, the branches, twigs, and everything in between, you wanted to do it as quickly as possible. You place them all into the large basket, observing the flickering flames. Itâs still going strong, but there are some embers of coal that seem to be dying out, and so you tug carefully the door of the fireplace open as you place some wood inside, fanning it so that it would grow a little more.
You brush your hands against your legs, getting rid of the spare bits of bark and wood, and hold it back up to the fire as you feel the tension in your fingers and wrists begin to melt away.Â
âWe donât pay âye to keep up our space, yâknow,âÂ
You turn your head around to the voice, smiling when you see Miss Murray standing behind you with her hands on her hips, her apron stained with spilled ale and some food splatters. Her gray curls are pulled underneath her cap, her full cheeks red and rosy, her lips pulled into a slight frown.
She tries to look serious, but her act slips away instantly when she sees you, moving closer as she wraps her around around you from behind, her arms reaching your shoulders, just barely, as you crouch a little to pull her in for a hug.Â
Itâs only been a night since she sees you, but this is always how Miss Murray greets you.Â
âAre âye warm?â She asks, her eyes worried as she looks at your hands and your slightly runny nose.Â
You chuckle, nodding your head so that she doesnât fret.Â
âIâm warming up,â you tease your brow slightly raised, holding your fingers up to her cheeks to show that they were no longer cold, wiping your elbow across your nose as you go back to holding your hands over the fire, âAnd dare I say itâs my right seeing how itâs my wood thatâs burning?âÂ
Miss Murray chuckles, pinching you softly on the side as you yelp, moving a little bit away from her as you giggle.
She stands next to you, looking over the crowd as she takes in who needs more beer and food, making a mental tally in her head. Once your entire body has finally thawed, you stand up straighter, turning around to look at the busy crowd, not a single chair going unused.Â
âItâs busier than usual, no?â You ask, crossing your arms across your chest as you look to Miss Murray, tucking your hands into your elbows to keep the warmth.Â
She nods, her eyes turning to yours slightly before she goes back to assessing each table.Â
âAye,â her voice is slightly lowered, not wanting others to hear, âThe storm caught many travelers by surprise. Thereâs a group of young men coming in from Lolygrad,â a Western town, you note, a name you remember from ages ago, âSaid they wanted to go up ânor but their horses cannae walk through the snow.âÂ
You chew on your lips, looking at the large group of men gathered near a corner, their beards and shaggy hair covering up most of their faces. Most of them had their backs to you, and the ones facing outwards were hunched, their shoulders sagging as they leaned their ears in to hear clearly what was being said. The rest of their features were pinched together as they let out howls of laughter, swinging their mugs of beer around as they listened to one of their members tell an animated story.Â
You slightly smiled at the hearty sound, against your own will.
âOh, dear, before I forget,â Miss Murray suddenly turned around, gently holding your hands as you look a little bit down, âEwan,â her son, another worker at the tavern, the poor fellow who was tasked with almost every job, including getting the hefty tree trunks cut into bits, âSaid he saw âye heaving that barrow through the snow-â you began to shake your head, knowing what she was going to say but she raised a hand midway to stop you.Â
âHe told me to tell âye to leave it near the stables. When the snow has settled and thaws a bit, heâll bring it to âye.âÂ
Your brows furrow, lips parting slightly as you go to protest.Â
âBut what about the firewood? I canât lug it up on my own,â you joke a little bit, your lips quivering as Mis Murray smiles, patting your arm as she shakes her head.Â
âYeâve brought us enough wood to supply a week, maybe even more,â she says, and you look behind your shoulder at the overflowing bin, knowing there were at least three more filled with logs waiting out back, âGive yerself a rest dear.â Her kind face looks at you in such a way that you canât argue, sighing deeply through your nose as you debate it. You have enough coins to last you for a while, and seeing that you already have some bread and food prepared, it shouldnât be much of an issue. So you nod.
You move to get your gloves, pulling them on as you head back out through the kitchen. You brace yourself for the cold, wrapping your scarf tighter around your neck and throwing your hood over your head as you open the door, quickly leaving and shutting it, knowing how much he cooks bickered when you let the air in.
You keep your head down, nose scrunching as your boots crunch as you walk through the snow, nearing the corner of the tavern, the one that rounds into the road that leads you back home before a yell catches your attention.Â
It comes from behind you, the sound slightly muffled with the hood and scarf slightly covering your ears, but you glance over your shoulder to see what it was.Â
In the distance, one of the men is waving over to you, his body illuminated slightly from behind from one of the lit torches that hang on the wall of the stables. Your eyes squint, moving a few steps closer as you try to make out what he was saying.
â...glove,â is all you make out, the wind roaring around you not helping. But he waves a red glove around, and you look to your hands to see that your right glove was missing. It had been so cold that you didnât notice it had been blown away, the only thing covering your hand being your bandages.Â
You shake your head, rolling your eyes at the thought, and slightly jog back, bringing your hand to your lips as you blow some hot air on it. Your cheeks feel like they're on fire with how freezing it is, the tip of your nose about to fall off, but youâre able to muster up a thankful smile as you near the man.Â
âThank you!â you call out, laughing a little bit at the absurdity of it all, boots scrunching and sounding like ice being shaved as you run a little bit closer to him, the man taking a few steps himself so that you wouldnât have to go the full distance, and you squint your eyes more, trying to make out his blurry appearance thatâs slightly coming to as he nears another torch, âItâs so cold that I didnât even noticeâŠâÂ
You stop.Â
It seems like time has stopped.Â
The snow seems to have frozen in mid-air, not falling as it stops around you. The wind no longer howls, but has fallen silent. The snow on the ground doesn't glisten, the torches lit with fire slowing down.
Your lungs donât work. You canât feel any air coming in through your nose. It might be because your nose refused to inhale. You canât feel your heart, canât feel a singular beat to keep you alive. Your pulse has fallen silent, your ears hearing every sound but no sound at all.
Gojo seems to have stopped breathing as well.Â
His hand is still reaching out, your glove held tightly in his fingers as he stares,Â
And you stare back.Â
Your chest heaves out a single puff of air.
You blink once before everything suddenly goes black.Â
â
â...is it reallyâŠ?âÂ
â...never found aâŠthought she hadâŠthere must beâŠâÂ
â..last time I saw him look like thatâŠâ
There are multiple voices that blend together, and you canât tell whatâs happening aside from the fact that you canât feel your limbs and your eyes feel like theyâve been turned to lead. You canât open them, canât move, canât do anything but try to figure out what is happening around you.
â...doubt he knew,â a voice, louder and more clear than the rest fills your ears, sounding a little less like it was coming from underwater, â...searched for monthsâŠlooks like herâŠâÂ
Her?Â
The conversations around you continue, and you feel your fingers slightly twitching, a good sign that you werenât completely incapable of moving. You feel your lashes flutter, lips parting a little bit.Â
You try to listen more to the voices, but suddenly a loud slam happens from somewhere in the room. You nearly flinch, eyes moving back and forth between your lids and you will yourself to sit up, to do something.
The voices suddenly all fall silent, and your ears are becoming more in tune because you can pick up on the heavy thud that rings around the walls, loud but quiet at the same time, heavy and deep.
The sound nears your ears before it completely stops.Â
You feel a touch, light, barely there, but you feel it. Itâs the grace of a feather upon your body, a fingertip that slightly moves across skin. Your pointer finger moves a little bit, but itâs so miniscule that you doubt the touch noticed.Â
Itâs familiar, you think to yourself, youâve felt this touch before. It wasnât Miss Murray, for her fingers were more round and rough. It wasnât foreign, because sometimes you still got off put by a stranger's touch. This was something you knew once, had carded somewhere in your mind when your skin felt raw and barren.
âNothing?âÂ
The voice, itâs even more familiar. You hear it not only settle deep into your eardrums, but it rattles around your head, flowing down into your blood, seeping into your bones. Your brows scrunch a little bit, and you feel like a little bit of life is flooding back into you. Your toes curl in your boots, fingers itching against the wooden surface you feel yourself lying back upon.Â
âNothing at all?âÂ
That voice. The touch. The feel of those fingers against your skin, the way the voice breathes.Â
Gojo. Â
Your eyes suddenly snap open, your chest concaving in as you take in a big gasp of air. You shoot upwards, your hands resting on either side of you as they balance you on the table, your chest moving up and down with big movements as you look around wildly.Â
The men that surrounded the table were the same men you saw earlier that night. But you know them all. Samson, Ren, Kenji, Declan, Koji. You remember now, how they all challenged each other to grow the longest hair and beard in the winter months, the winner taking the head of a hog they had hunted. Malcolm, OisĂn, Shiro, Genji.Â
They all stared back at you, their faces clammy and pale, as if they were staring at a ghost.Â
Your body is shaking, your neck turning when you look to your side.Â
Gojo.Â
Thereâs a hitch in your breathing, your lips trembling when your eyes take in his face.Â
Those eyes, the same eyes that stared back at you the day you married him. A foggy storm, oceans clashing upon each other, dark and messy. His hair was as white as the falling snow right outside the window, slightly longer than what you remembered, but still the same shape.Â
His lips, red as the blood that stained the bandages around your hands. You take in the shape of his nose, the lashes upon his lids. The sharp line of his jaw, the slight twitch of his eyes. You take in the lifeless appearance of his skin, his cheeks lacking their usual pink hue. His figure looks even sturdier, more pronounced muscles around his shoulders and chest, the fabric around his arms tight. He looks exactly like you imagine him each night.Â
You had forgotten some little things over time; like the scar near his left ear or the mole above his brow. You donât remember how there was a slight crook in his nose from when he had broken it as a child from falling down a tree, but itâs still him. Itâs Gojo.
Your fingers itch to touch his face. Your nails dig into the wood.Â
You look at him. Look at the way his chest rises with each breath. This wasnât a dream. This was him. He was real and staring back at you.Â
You had to get out.Â
It feels like a force pushes your body forward. You donât know what strength it was that allowed you to swing your legs over the table, what power it was that allowed you to lurch yourself away and fall into him. He doesnât budge, doesnât falter, but you hear the others around you exclaiming some things in surprise at your sudden movements.Â
You donât stay on him for too long, forcing your feet that feel like iron ore to take one step at a time. You limp and stumble your way through, blindly grabbing for things as you pick up your pace, not looking over your shoulders as your hand reaches for the door.Â
âCome back.âÂ
Itâs his voice. You feel yourself shiver at the sound.Â
But you donât know what to do except escape, your palm touching the door knob.Â
âCome. Back.â His voice is steady, biting, warning, and he doesnât say anything else because this itself is the extent of what heâs willing to say.Â
You pause, not looking behind you, your knees shaking as you support yourself upright on the door, one hand sprawled out on it as you heave. You feel like throwing up, feel like your head is about to burst.Â
This canât be happening. This canât be real.Â
You feel your body shaking, your arms quivering, your legs wobbling. Your shoulders are moving up and down as you struggle to breathe again, and you feel your legs slowly give out beneath you, and you crumble down onto the floor, your hand still on the door as the other one covers your mouth, trying to keep your broken soul contained.
âMy lord, should we-âÂ
âGet out,â Gojo says, barely above a whisper, but perhaps the most forward and heavy command youâve ever heard him give.Â
Thereâs a confused silence that follows, his men faltering with the sudden order.Â
âBut-âÂ
âOut!â He roars, and you donât make a move from the door, canât find a bone in your body that has the ability to pull yourself away.Â
Thankfully, you think this is one of the more advanced rooms of the tavern, and when you hear the patter of footsteps and a door latch open from another side of the room, one that most likely leads to an office that has another door out to the hallways. It takes a minute, but the footsteps begin to slow and finally they cease, the door quickly clicking shut as the last man closes it behind him.Â
But thereâs still one person remaining, and you could distinguish who it was by the sound of his breathing alone.
Your back is still facing him, your hands moving to hold your head as you fall sideways to the wall next to you, your hands moving down to hide your sweaty and clammy face from the one person you had convinced yourself youâd never see again.
He doesnât say anything. He doesnât move.Â
You curl your legs up to your chest in an effort to hide as much as yourself away from him as possible. It feels like your heart isnât working correctly. It rattles around at an odd pace in the limited space of your rib cage, bouncing around erratically, trying to warn you that something was wrong. Your hands grasp at your chest, fingers digging into the skin as you try to calm it down.Â
But you soon realize that thatâs not your only problem. Your head was spinning in a way that made you see twos of everything, your forehead beading with sweat. It feels like youâve lost control over any of your movements, your body working as one, your mind as a totally separate entity. You wondered if this was you dying, if your body had suddenly given up.
âSlow your breathing down.âÂ
You falter, eyes looking above your direct line of sight which was staring at the wall adjacent to you, traveling upwards when you slowly looked up and saw muddy boots, then a familiar pair of black trousers, upwards till you landed on his chest and then his chin. You see his face, looking down at your form, his eyes dark but focused on your face, his lips pulled into a thin line. You hadnât heard him come near you, but you also doubt youâd hear a canon go off in this state.Â
Gojo.
You shake your head, looking instantly away from him as your lips tremble, snot falling from your nose as you look anywhere else. It seems difficult to breathe, the simple but tiring task bordering on impossible.
You canât see him, but hear a small thump sound a few seconds later. You glance from above your lashes to see that heâs taken a seat, resting his back on the wall thatâs facing yours. His legs are sprawled out, long things that you used to tease him about, and the tip of his boots almost reach your knees.Â
âReach your hand out,â he says after a beat of silence.Â
You almost scoff at the insanity of it.Â
But you look at him, truly look him in the eyes this time, and see that heâs being serious.Â
You look back down to your shaking hands, cold and still bandaged up, and then back to him. It feels unreal. You feel your hands shake even more when your mind computes again that itâs Gojo thatâs two feet in front of you.Â
âOne hand at a time,â Gojo says, his voice lowered, and he demonstrates by sitting up a little bit, leaning a breathe closer, still feet away from you as he lifts his hand up from where it was resting on his thigh, holding it up in the air, fingers sprawled from each other, âLike this.â
Your mind tells you to move, just a little bit, and your fingers twitch against your knees that were sitting close to your chest. It takes a few seconds but you will raise your hands upwards, slowly, gently, just like he did. Itâs shaking, he isnât, but he doesnât say anything about it.Â
His eyes look over the bandages on your hand. Some spots are dotted with red blood from your most recent cuts. He looks at your fingers, the dirt beneath your nails and the way theyâre cut at odd angles. He finally focuses on your fourth finger, lingering on its bareness, and you donât realize in that moment just how much he was mourning the absence of your wedding ring.Â
âBring it away from your body,â his voice is barely a whisper, thick with unspoken emotions that have plagued him for the past year and a half, his own eyes glossing over slightly when he takes you in, just as you were doing to him.
You find that in these last moments your erratic breathing has slowed down a bit, so you go the distance, gingerly stretching your arm out so that your hand is straight in front of you, still trembling just a bit.Â
âIâm going to hold your hand with mine. It helps, I promise.âÂ
I promise.Â
Your teeth clatter against each other, your tongue laying flat and like a stone in your mouth. You canât speak yet, but thereâs a sharp look in his eyes. The same one that happened whenever he made his promises to you. Ones heâd never break.Â
So you slowly tilt your head down in a small nod.Â
He watches this, observing your behavior. He shows you his hand, never putting it down, just carefully outstretching his arm like you did, and he moves a little bit away from the wall to get a little closer to you.
You never blink as you watch his hand stretch out towards yours, fingers straight, and in a few seconds they hover above yours. Heâs not wearing his ring, you note, but put your focus on the fact that in another moment his skin is touching your skin, his fingers curling slowly over yours. In another moment, his hand moves, gently holding yours in his. That touch, the same touch you feel like a lingering ache at night.
The two of you donât say anything, looking at where your hands meet with bated breath.
The touch was grounding. You feel his fingers against your palm, long and steady, unlike your own. His skin is warm, comforting, inviting. Itâs not soft, but it never was. Years of yielding swords, bows, spears, using his fists as means of destruction caused that. But when he held you, it never felt like the hands of a warrior, just of a man. Your own fingers stretch outwards, your tips gracing his large hand, slightly above his wrist, where his pulse point is. You try to forget that the last time you touched him was so long agoÂ
âBetter?â He asks simply, taking in how your chest had slowed its movements, the sweat on your forehead stopping. Your eyes are still glossy, but he knows itâs more than just an episode thatâs causing that.Â
You swallow thickly, looking down at your hands and not to him as you nod again.
Thereâs a silence that follows, the only sound being the small exhale that you would give, and his slight inhale.Â
Youâre the first to move, your hand going slack in his as you begin to pull away. His own finger twitches, not wanting to let go for a minute, but he falters and lets you move away, resting your back up against the wall as you cradle the hand close to your chest, as if it was searing.Â
Gojo moves back too, his shoulders square as his hands go to rest on his thighs again, letting out a large puff of air through his lips. After another moment his head dips, fists clenched as he pinches the bridge of his nose, his eyes squeezing shut as if he too canât believe any of this. He runs a hand through his white hair, pushing it back, before he allows himself to open his eyes again and stare at you.Â
âIâve looked for you for sixteen months.âÂ
You look at him blankly, but inside something cracks.Â
âI thought you were dead after the first eight,â Gojo says, âSo I've just been searching for your body.â
You look away from him, the sight of him here and speaking to you too much to bear.Â
He waits for you to say something, anything, a flash of anger crossing his face, his nose flaring and lips stretching thin as he tries to control himself. He had convinced himself for a while now that you were dead. He wondered what heâd do if he found you somewhere, not knowing how to prepare himself for the sight.Â
But in the beginning, when he was sure that heâd find you, Gojo wondered about what he might say to you if he ever saw you again. He told himself that heâd yell, heâd beg you to tell him why you ran away, why you never wrote back, but his anger faded and dissipated the minute he saw you. The anger, the frustration, the pain, hurt, breaking, everything that he feels now is from seeing you alive, knowing that you were alive this whole time and never once said anything. The tears and the bite in his throat he has to fight back being from the sole reason of how much he missed you.Â
He sees you here, alive, your chest moving with each breath. He sees the flutter of your lashes against your cheek, the plump of your lips. He sees your eyes, more tired and filled with unknown sorrow, but still that burning color he loved so much. He watches the way your arms wrap around yourself, the curve of your jaw and the way you try to blink away your tears. Gojo sees you and though there are small changes to your appearance, still remembers you being as beautiful as the day he last saw you.
His wife, Gojo thinks, his wife was alive after all this time.
âWhy didnât you say anything?â he thinks his voice comes out breathy, almost like he was trying to stop himself from cracking in front of you, âWhy didnât you send a letter? OrâŠor a sign?â
You bite down on your lip, your head turned away from him so that he couldnât see your face. You feel yourself choking as he speaks, your eyes stinging with tears again. You canât do this, you canât.
You blindly walk back into the other part of the room, where he and his men originally were. You hear him move instantly behind you, as if he was fearful youâd try to make a run for it again, but youâre searching for a pitcher, your throat dry and aching.
You stumble around, wiping away at your wet cheeks, hands stiff as you turn desperately to find anything, something to just wash away the biting and choking feeling you had that was settling deep in your chest.Â
Your eyes almost light up when you see a pitcher, making your way through it as your fingers grasp the handle, finding a cup next to it as you bring it up. Itâs heavy, filled with water, and although youâve gotten stronger these past months lifting and carrying wood, you canât seem to properly pour.Â
It must be from how your hands are still shaking. Water pours messily from the sprout, getting everywhere but the cup. You let out a frustrated cry, wiping the tears away from the corners of your eyes with your elbow as you try again.Â
Something stops you. You look over your shoulder to see Gojo, his hand hovering over your arm thatâs holding the pitcher. Silently, he grabs it, fingers curling around the handle as you let go. He reaches for the cup in your hand, which you give him, and sniffles when he calmly pours some water for you, handing it back with the cup full.Â
You take it after a beat of quiet, bringing it to your lips as you chug it down. You finish it in seconds, wiping your lips as you squeeze your eyes shut, feeling his heat radiating off of him from how close he was to you.
âYou have to leave.âÂ
Your voice comes out frail and hoarse, and you're staring at him through tear stricken eyes, your lips pressed firmly into a little frown, one that you do to help you from crying even more. You cross your arms over your chest, wincing slightly when your bandage rubs the wrong way, but you refuse to drop your gaze from his.
âY-you canât know Iâm here,â youâre shaking your head adamantly, stuttering as you think of everything that has happened and what it means, the repercussions that could come from it, all of your sacrifices amounting to nothing, âNone of you canâŠplease, gods, IâŠâ You let out a gasp, hands covering your mouth as you frantically walk away from him, pacing around the vastness of the empty room.Â
You run your hands over your face, wringing your fingers, fidgeting with the fabric of your bodice as you shake your head repeatedly. They know youâre here, they know youâre alive. If anybody finds out, if word gets out of where you are and your true identity, gods, what if the king finds out?
Youâre muttering words to yourself, tears catching on your cheeks, chin, falling into your lips, and you phase Gojo out. You act like heâs no longer there. It feels like what youâve done for the past year, pretending like his ghost, the thought of him, wasnât haunting you when in fact it was at every single second of the day.
âLeave!â You shout, your voice hoarse, âGet out! Leave! Please!â Youâre pleading with the gods above to make him listen to you, to cast away his stubbornness and pride and make him listen to your words just this once.
âLeave?â He says with a stutter, a chuckle of disbelief falling from his lips, âWhat are you sa-âÂ
âGet out!â You scream, cutting him off, pointing at his chest and to the door, âI donât want you here! Go!â
He shouts your name, loud and clear, and you instantly stop.Â
Your brows are furrowed down the middle, a crease between them, and you feel like your eyes are slightly twitching. You must look mad to him, not the person he once remembered. You hope he feels disgust, wanting to leave as soon as he gets a few words in. That would be ideal. Maybe he despises you so much he doesnât talk about you ever again, satisfied to see just how poorly youâre doing by yourself
But to be fair, he doesnât look any better himself.Â
There are dark circles under his eyes. His skin seems flushed, but not in a good way. Thereâs a bead of sweat above his brow bone, his lips moving slightly as if he wants to yell, scream, cry, shout, but canât figure out which one to do. The more you get a look at him the more youâre able to see the cracks in his usual appearance. The way he hides behind his strength but fails to use that strength to keep himself afloat.Â
But oh, how you wish to walk to him, run to him. How you long to collapse in his chest, to feel his heartbeat against our cheek. How you want to feel those sturdy hands wrap themselves around you, give you an embrace youâve been chasing for so long. You want to feel his skin, taste his tears. You want him, all of him. But you canât, you remind yourself. Heâs not yours to have anymore.Â
âThatâs it?â He bites out, his tone furious, âYou havenât seen me in over a year and thatâs it? I have to leave?â He sputters, a bitter laugh falling from his lips as he rubs a hand across his jaw in disbelief, as if he canât fathom the person thatâs standing in front of himself right now is the person he nearly died trying to find.
You glance out the window, the snow storm still going strong. Itâs as dark as ink outside, the only light thatâs illuminating your faces coming from the candles lit that scatter across the room. You wish you were in the snow than in here, the freezing winds better than the hot and burning sensation you feel at the moment.Â
âYouâŠyou donât understand,â you plead quietly, âThis isnât-â
âWhat?â Gojo snaps, cutting you off as your mouth clams up, âThis isnât what? Simple? Easy to grasp?â Heâs cracking, his demeanor slipping from calm to angry, âHow you ran away without any fucking warning? How you evaded all my guards? How you wound up here? What can I not understand? Because Iâve spent a year and a fucking half coming up with every single theory that could explain this!â His voice bounces off the walls and you wince slightly, face cracking as you sniffle, âSo what? What is it? What can I not get thatâs so difficult to comprehend?â
A strand of his hair has fallen onto his face and his eyes have gotten as dark blue as they can get. You let out a little sob, covering your mouth as you turn away from him, shaking your head again and again as you try to think, try to will yourself out of this.Â
How could you explain any of this? How could you tell him without anything happening as a consequence? Thereâs no simple way. If you tell him the truth, whoâs to say heâd believe you. And on the off chance he does, thereâs no way heâd sit still and take it. All your efforts of keeping the two nations from war would break. If Gojo believed that his wife had been abducted due to order from the Southern king, a war was no longer the worst thing that could happen but full fledged destruction. Years of bloodshed and violence and everything you did would be for nothing.Â
But if you didnât tell him? If you lied? You didnât know what to do or say, not expecting or preparing for a moment like this because you never thought it would happen. You tried to live blissfully unawares, hoping that your past life had eventually faded away.Â
âTell me,â he says again, his voice cracking, and his tone has fallen, itâs not angry, not the facade he was putting up because he could never be angry with you, could never yell at you and immediately regret his actions, âIâm here, I found you, so, so please, justâŠjust tell me why,â
You jam your palms into your eyes, beginning to pace around the room again as you breathe deeply.Â
âI, I didnât know,â you donât know what to say, how to lie, what to do to make any of this make sense, how to satisfy sixteen months of questions, prayers, hurt, in the little time you had, âI canâtâŠâ you sigh through your nose, looking at him apologetically, cheeks shining in the candlelight as your lips tremble and you shake your head, giving him a small shrug, âI-I canât tell you.âÂ
âWas it because I left?â He takes a few steps forward to get closer to you but falters when he sees how you take one back, his eyes confused, full of pain as he stammers, âWereâŠwere you scared? Because I came back,â you let out another cry, hiccuping when you heard the tenderness and hurt in his voice, âI came back like I promised you I would.â And you shake your head to that and he pauses, hand clenching and unclenching as he tries to figure you out with your minimal words and even more limited movements.
âSoâŠso why? Darling, please, just tell me why,â Heâs begging you, and Gojo never begs. Not unless he needs to. Not unless itâs without anybody other than you.Â
âYou donât - donât understand,â your voice cracks as you wipe away your falling tears, âItâs n-not that.â How could he think you didnât believe him? The thought that he even believed that, using it as a hypothesis breaks you even more and your chest shakes, fingers itching to hold him and tell him everything that happened.
Gojo looks like heâs struggling to think, like he doesnât know what to do as he throws his arms in the air, his eyes pleading with you. You see a slight sheen in them, see the way they quiver, how maybe he too is crying. Maybe from frustration, maybe because he just missed seeing your face.Â
âThen what?â He takes another tentative step closer and you donât move, frozen in place, and he takes one more step to you, until heâs only a foot away, âWas it because ofâŠbecause of the war? Because of what I did? Were you angry with me?âÂ
You lick your lips as you pursue them, squeezing your eyes shut as you cry even more. A sound tears from your throat, a sort of wail that you canât control, and itâs one that you donât mean to let out. You furiously wipe at your face, your head hanging low as you cross your arms across your stomach. It doesnât take another second until you hear his boots thump along the floor, bringing himself to you as he pauses. And slowly, before you or Gojo knows whatâs happening, you feel one of his arms circle your shoulders. Unknowing, a movement he wasnât sure of.Â
But then you break, falling into his chest as you sob, your arm flying upwards to grasp onto anything you could, fingers digging into the fabric of his coat, into his shoulders, around his waist. You can smell the faint lingering smell of smoke on him, the little hint of leather. You sniffle, fingers moving up towards his hair, wanting to feel it beneath your skin. You wanted to cherish it for a moment longer, like you should have all those months ago. You feel the sturdiness of his chest against yours, feel the buttons that engrave into your cheek. You feel him, all of him that there is to offer.Â
You donât realize how he does the same as you. The anger instantly faded when he felt your body against his, when he wrapped his arms around your frame. He could feel the flesh of your cheeks as he moved his hands across your face, over and down your torso as he grasped onto your waist. He wanted to push you away, force you to feel the pain he had all those months, but he couldnât. He had you now, and he didnât know how much longer he was allowed to. His lips are a breath away from your forehead, and he presses them to the crown of your head, his chest shaking as he cries silently, his tears wetting your hair.Â
You donât know why he holds you like he used to, why he comforts you like he still loves you. After all this time you thought that the only way heâd touch was if he were to touch you with a sword, banishing you from the North and from any of their territories if he saw you again. Not this. Never this.
If only you knew how upon feeling you, holding you close to his chest, he first took a breath of air in sixteen months. If only you knew how his heart started to pump, pump, pump, the way it was supposed to, and not the pathetic little beats it did just to simply keep him alive but wasnât living until now. Because the truth was that heâd already forgiven you for what you did. Heâd forgiven everything you had done up until this point and would forgive everything you do later, even if he wouldnât be there to witness it.Â
âIâm s-sorry,â you cry into his chest, âIâm sorry, Iâm sorry, Iâm sorry,â you chant, your words slurring together in a mixture of apologies, guilt, longing, hurt, and every emotion youâve bottled up and decided to put away, hoping youâd never have to touch them again.Â
It was a culmination of months away from the only man you had ever loved. Months of barely surviving, living through peoples scraps and trash as you tried to run away as far away from the only home you had ever known in a last ditch effort to be of some help to the people you cared about. It was a broken plea for Gojo to hear everything you had suffered in just two repeated words, knowing that he could never truly know what you had done and why you had done it unless you told him yourself. He just hugs you tighter, his arms caging you in as you bring yours close to your chest, your hand lying against his torso as your body shakes with cries. His hand rubs up and down your back, fingers curling into your cloak as he just nods, not trusting his own voice, just holding you with as much strength he could muster without crushing you.
Gojo waited for sixteen months, and heâd be damned if he let go of you now. Not after countless nights of staying awake and days riding across the four nations, through rain and mud, snow and storm, heat and desert, weeks spent without barely a blink of sleep, all in efforts to find you. And now he has. And he isn't letting you go. Not now, not ever again.
âDid you mean what you wrote?â He asks against your head, his lips falling open in a silent cry as his hands shake against your body. You squeeze your hands, balling them into fists against his chest. No, you want to scream, no!
âI have to leave. I could never, under any godsâ sky, pretend to keep loving a man as barbarous as you,â his voice is choked, the sentence falling from his lips at such a heart wrenching rate, and a part of your mind flashes to that fated night when the man put that knife to your throat and forced you to copy down those words, the same ones heâs saying now, the words that he memorized after reading your farewell letter over and over again, the letters searing into his mind, âDid you mean that?â You hear how Gojoâs voice cracks, as if hearing you admit to that would be a fate worse than death, as if he regrets asking the question thatâs been plaguing him for months.Â
You feel your tears soak through his coat, your teeth biting into your lips as you control yourself, taking every part of your soul that wants to crawl out and scream, from shaking your head. So you just go limp against him, nails digging into your palms.
âLook at me,â he whispers, his hand trailing up from your back, floating over your side as it comes upwards to grab at the side of your head which was hidden away in his chest. You donât fight him as his fingers latch under the skin of your jaw, or when he cups your face as gently as he possibly could, his touch like a feather as he angles you upwards to look at him.
When you see his face you let out a little shaky exhale, wet and messy as you feel his warmth travel from his fingers to your body, tingling everywhere, a certain type of warmth that you had been missing for a while and only came back because the other half of your soul did.Â
âTell me you meant it, p-please,â his voice travels across the walls of the room, heavy, barely above a whisper but you hear every crack, every single way he breaks down, no longer able to keep himself strong, âThat you ran away because you never loved me, and IâllâŠIâll leave,â his thumb rubs up and down your jaw, a movement he doesnât even realize heâs doing, something thatâs second nature to him and a tear falls from the corner of his eyes, his lashes fluttering as he tries to blink them away, âIâll leave and youâll never have to worry about me ever again.â
No, no no, no this canât be happening all over again. You feel like youâre going insane, his thumb wiping away your tears as you stare silently at him, your lips chapped as you shake your head slightly, knowing the movement itself just cost you everything. You see the way a little spark makes its way onto his face and you shake your head even more at that, not wanting him to get any sort of idea.Â
âN-no, no, no,â you mutter, gasping for air, his hand falling a little bit but you chase after his touch, your head falling into his palm like it was meant to, âNo, IâŠI didnât want to, I m-mean I didnât, I,â youâre stammering, words falling out like vomit and you canât control them.Â
You press your cold fingers to your eyes, shaking your head as if itâs the only thing you can do.
âI,â you sigh, looking up at him with a breaking look, âI d-didnât but,â he deflates a little bit and it hurts to see the most strongest person youâve ever seen look so broken, âBut I canât,â you whisper the last word with as much strength as you could, âI canât go back.âÂ
Gojo lets out a puff of air, his shoulders rising and falling, his hand pulling away from your face, most likely thinking you didnât want it there when it was the only thing you wanted, the only thing you longed for when you were alone and slept with one eye open.
He looks lost, confused, not knowing what to say to make any sense of this.
You take a step back.
âThen,â he runs a hand through his hair, something he does when he is stressed, not knowing what else to do with his hands, âWhy did you write it? WhyâŠwhy, why did you leave?â
You look away, your mouth opening slightly before you close it again, knowing your best option was to stay silent.
âWasâŠwas there someone else?â Thereâs a slight tremor in his voice, no malice, no blaming, just curiosity, âSomeone here?âÂ
You quickly shake your head, hiccuping a little bit as your nose scrunches up, sniffing when you vehemently try to silently tell him no, that the only person youâve loved and can ever love was him. That youâd rather stab a stake through your heart that makes room in your heart for anybody else but him.
âY-you didnât do anything,â you murmur, a tear slipping down your nose as you shudder, âIt wasnât because of you.â
âThen why?â He presses quickly, pleading, his cheeks red and flushes as he begs for you to talk, to say something other than the empty clues youâre giving him, âIf, if not because of another person thenâŠthen what possible reason did you have for leaving?â Gojo pauses to catch his breath, glancing away from you as he tries to regain composure, âYou left without any other reasons telling me why, coming to a random town on the eastern coast with nobody you know here. Itâs,â he laughs to himself, shaking his head as he shrugs indifferently, âItâs not like you were forced to leave, soâŠso why, why darling, why?âÂ
Thereâs a hitch in your breathing when he utters the simple words. Itâs not like you were forced to.Â
Your mind flashes quickly with memories of that night, the man on top of you, the knife pressed to your throat, urging you to write that letter. You remember waking up on his horse, your hands bound, trying to piece together what was happening. You think back to his greasy hair, the oily smile, his cruel eyes. You can still hear his gruff voice in your ear, the way he ordered you around your own room as if you were his dog, doing whatever he asked you to to spare the lives of those outside the door. You remember his hot breath on your skin, the weight of his body on yours, the way his eyes raked over your figure. You remember him lying on the ground, bloodied, calling you names as you ran away with his horse.Â
Gojo calls your name, once and then twice when you donât acknowledge him the first time.Â
He stares at your body with furrowed brows, taking in the way your chest heaves, your fingers digging into your sides as you stare blankly out the window.
Gojo takes a few brisk paces to where you were, his hands grabbing your elbows, not tightly, just to force you out of your busy mind, his head shaking in utter confusion at the way you suddenly left, and you slowly blink out of your stupor, looking at him and his questioning eyes.Â
Thereâs a strange look on your face, one he doesnât recognize.Â
His mouth parts a little bit, eyes squinting together as he assesses you. He lets out a small laugh, a disbelieving, questioning one, one that he canât control because you didnât react like this to any of his other questions.
âYouâŠâ his hand falls from your elbow, hovering over the back of your head, gently holding your nape, and you feel like a magnet, drawn to him, your hands balled by your side to keep you from doing something youâd regret, âYou werenâtâŠforced to leaveâŠright?â
You just stare at him.
You count to five, trying to steady your breaths. You want to shake your head, to disagree with his question even though it was the only correct thing, but your body stops you from doing that. Maybe it was fighting back, begging for you to tell him the truth. You evade eye contact from him, your tongue resting on the roof of your mouth and you swallow thickly, forcing down the bile.
But Gojo knows you, knows how to read your quiet expressions and little ticks. You donât do anything but stay quiet. Soon, after a few seconds pass and he stares longer at your face, your silence becomes your only answer.
His hand falls away from your head, taking a few steps back as if the air had been punched from his lungs.
It was one of the first things he thought when he was given your letter. Thought you had been abducted, and entertained the idea for as long as he could. But there were just no signs of a forced entry, your bags packed and missing some clothes. He read your letter over and over again, and when they never found you, he began to believe the words you had written down. Different ideas came to him, ones of a different lover, ones that made him believe you truly never loved him, ones that said you had run away on your own free will.Â
He covers his mouth with his hand, a tremor in his breath when you glanced at him with a sheen in your eyes.
âButâŠ?âÂ
Thereâs no answer, no need for one.
You shrug a little bit, wiping at your cheeks once again as you purse your lips together, sniffing as you try to keep everything at bay.
âI, um,â you swallow your spit back, biting your lip as you think for a second, think before the dam breaks and you realize it useless to keep any of this in anymore because Gojo knows and itâs worthless to keep it a secret, âA man came a few nights after you had left. Through my window.â
You peek over at Gojo and quickly glance away because the look on his face is too much to process. You keep your eyes trained on the corner of a carpet, at the fraying end as you decide to continue.Â
âHe was huge, âToru, like nothing youâve ever seen,â you say with a small laugh, one because this entire situation is too much to handle, your hands moving away from your body as you show his width with the space between them, âHe told me heâd cut my tongue out if I screamed, so IâŠI didnât.âÂ
You sniffle again, chewing on the inside of your cheek, pausing slightly as your jaw ticks the more you recall that night.
âH-he had this letter in his, uh,â you sigh, trying to control your breathing as you blink rapidly, brows furrowed as you motion to your chest, âIn his pocket. He told me to write the same words down b-but in my own handwriting.âÂ
Gojo feels his knees give out, holding onto one of the pillars of the bed next to him to keep himself upright, his eyes never leaving your lips, his head suddenly feeling like it was about to detach from his body.Â
âI was told to pack some b-bags and clothes,â you wave your hands around as if that wasnât important, âAnd I think he, uh, hit me in the back of my head,â your hand rises to your head, as if you could still feel the pulsing feeling from when you had woken up days later, âSo I was out for five, six? Six days, I think, before I woke up again and was on his horse.â
The words fell from your mouth like silk, things you had been wanting to see forever spilling like water from a pitcher, and you couldn't stop yourself, the only thing your mouth was willing to do was continue.
âHe said that somebody had sent him. Some bidding for the king, I guess. I think sometime between his talking I realized he was sent to kill me, dump my body in the woods so youâd think I had left. So I knew I had to leave, fight my way out somehow. AndâŠand I donât knowâŠhow, but,â you chuckle to yourself, shrugging at the thought of you when you broke free from your restraints and overpowered him, the look of surprise in his gnarly face when you dug the knife into his ribs, âBut I was able to get away from him. I mightâve killed him, I didnât check.â
Your blurry eyes blink upwards to Gojo as your head tilts to the side as you give him a small smile, full of unsaid words and melancholy feelings.
âI wanted to go back, back home to you and - and everything but,â your teeth dig into your bottom lip as the two of you stare back at each other through tears and even more tears, âBut he said that if I had committed treason of the highest degree, that,â your teeth rattle, âThat youâd never take me back. And that if theyâd send more people like him. To hurt people l-like you, like Alina, my friends, your parents, e-everyone I cared for, everyone that you care for,â you canât control the little cry that escape your lips, your hand flying upwards to your throat as you give yourself a second, âAnd I thought to myself thatâŠthat maybe if I ran away, if you thought that I no longer wanted to b-be your wife then,â one shoulder lifts up in a sad shrug, âThen maybe everything would resolve itself. That thereâd be no war to fight, no cause to die for.â
You wait for a second, air lodged in your lungs.
âI nearly ended up dead on the side of a trail,â you motion around you, to the tavern, the snow, the town, âA lady found me and took me here. I,â you swallow thickly, tears caught on your lashes, âIâve been here ever since.â
You look at him but he isnât looking at you. You want him to look up, just this once, but he doesn't and you allow him his own time to think. You gnaw on your lips, fingers fidgeting with themselves as you tilt your head a little bit.
âIâŠâ Your head tilts down to your chest, your words dying on your tongue, but thereâs a sudden warmth that takes over you and you feel your legs being lifted from the ground as strong arms circle around your waist, your body almost flying back with the force and speed you were picked up with. You feel your arm go to circle around your head, holding you close to his face as he hugs you to himself like he never has before.
Your legs wrap around his torso, your cheek pressing against his and you cry, you let yourself let go of the tears, let go of the lost time, let go of all the feelings you told yourself you aren't allowed to feel, and wrapped your arms tightly around his shoulders and neck, holding him as close as you could to you.
âI j-just wanted to help,â you murmur wetly, choking as you sob, âI didnât want anybody else to - to get hurt,â you tell him in broken phrases, âI didnât want you to get h-hurtâŠâ
He shushes you, lips kissing the side of your face, the corners of your eyes, your cheeks, the crown of your head, your ears, everything he could reach, feverishly. You could taste the saltiness of his own tears on your tongue, could feel his heart beating quickly from the pulse on his neck.Â
âIâm sorry,â he whispers against your skin, his eyes squeezing shut as he shakes his head over and over again, âIâm so sorry sweetheart, Iâm sorry,â his arms grasp onto you tighter, âIâm sorry, Iâm sorry, gods, Iâm sorry, Iâm sorry darling, oh gods, Iâm sorry,â you laugh weakly at his muttered apologies, at the way it sounds like heâs praying and apologizing at the same time; for your forgiveness, for you to believe that he was more sorry than any man has been and could be in his life.
âI s-shouldâve stayed,â he cries out, his lips trembling as he kisses your forehead, between your eyebrows, your lids, âI should never have left,â you shake your head, trying to stop him but you canât, âIâŠI shouldnât have left, shit, gods, itâs m-my fault, I shouldâve-â
âItâs not your fault,â you murmur against his ear, kissing his jaw softly, pulling away a little bit so that you could look him in the eyes, shaking your head a firmly as you could, holding onto the side of his face in your shaking hands, âDonât you ever, e-ever, say that...you couldnât - you couldnât have known.â You shake with cries as you try to smile, try to rake your fingers through his hair to calm him down, twirling his hair around like you used to when youâd wake up next to him. You unlatch your legs from his waist, slowly setting them down as you stand up on your own, your hands still tangled with each other in his hair.
âI never stopped loving you,â you whisper, watching the way his face crumbled upon hearing your words, âWhenâŠwhen I was starving and didnât know if Iâd make it through the night, I tried to pretend you were beside me. And,â your shoulders shake again, âAnd when I didnât want to wake up I pretended I was in o-our bed, about to wake up next to you. Everything - everything I did was for you, and IâŠI know you might hate me for it, despise me for running away butâŠâ you trail off, your thumb running across his cheekbones, his brows, his nose, âBut I hoped that one day youâd understand why.âÂ
You finish your words, staring at him as he stares at you, a storm happening behind those irises you loved so much. You deflate, knowing that this must be your final goodbye. That heâd never want to get back with somebody whoâd ruin their life so easily, whoâd break his heart so quickly and without any remorse. You try to cherish the way he looked, try to engrain the little features you had forgotten in your head for when he eventually pulled away and wasnât yours again. You open your mouth, wanting to tell him that you understand if he no longer shares the same feelings.
âIâm-âÂ
His lips slam against yours, his hand behind your head to keep you steady as you stumble a little bit. Your arms go up to hold onto his, surprised and taken aback by the sudden movement. He pulls away almost as quickly as he had moved in, an apologetic look flashing across his face.
âIâm sorry,â he mutters breathlessly, his lips shining with spit, âI-âÂ
This time itâs you who cuts him off, reaching your hands upwards to tangle back into his hair as your lips slot against and move roughly against his, mixing your tears, spit, love and pain with one another as he eagerly meets you in the middle with another hand sprawled out across your back, pulling you closer to him.
You angle your head upwards, wrapping your arms around his shoulders as your lips press harshly against one another. They move in tandem, in perfect synch, as if you hadnât spent one day away from each other but still with so much passion as if to make up for the months spent without one another.
You moan slightly, your lips opening as the sound escapes you, and he surges forward, his tongue meshing with yours as he licks into your mouth, wanting to taste you, to drink from you as if he hadnât had a proper sip to satiate his thirst in over sixteen months. His lips are soft and plump, just like you remember, and your eyelashes flutter against your cheek at the feeling of him panting into you like a mad man who was suddenly becoming sane.
The hand that he had resting on your back moves upwards, grabign and kneading at your hips, cupping your waist as you whine at the spark his touch brings, feeling lightheaded when he pulls away slightly just to bite down on your bottom lip with his teeth, his nose nudging against yours as you try to catch your breath.Â
âI missed you,â he whispers against your lips, two hands cradling each side of your face, âSo, so much. I never stopped looking for you,â you laugh through your tears, your eyebrows quivering as you hold onto him, âI could barely sleep since youâve been gone and the only reason I did was so that I could dream of you.âÂ
You pull his neck down to press one, two, three chaste and salty kisses against his trembling lips.
âI would have taken you back even if you had burned the entirety of the North,â Gojo tell you in a low tone, âI would have taken you back even if you carved my heart out,â he kisses the tip of your nose tenderly, âWhich you damn near did with that letter.â You laugh softly, his thumbs on either side of your lips as he cradles your face in the palms of his hands.
âI wish I never wrote it,â you say quickly, scrambling, your eyes darting around, âI neverâŠâ but he hushes you, shaking his head as he bring your head forward to place a longing and slow kiss on your forehead, one hand at the nape of your neck to force you look him in the eyes.Â
âIf he,â he pauses, his nose flaring at the mention of the man who tore you away from him, he controls the anger that boils and bubbles at his flesh at the thought of him touching you, threatening you, hurting you, taking you away from him, but he knows itâs not the time for that right now, heâll deliver chastisement when he gets the chance, âIf that man told you to kill me, to kill an entire group of my men so that he wouldnât hurt you, Iâd let you it in a heartbeat,â you feel him wipe a tear away, looking at your features, taking in everything he had been nearly dying without for so long.
âIâm so proud of you, my darling girl,â he says delicately and your eyes well up at his words, never hearing them before and never expecting Gojo to be the one to tell you after everything that you had done, âGoing through what you did? Surviving on your own? Gods,â he lets out a little chuckle, dipping his head down so it could rest on your own, smiling at you through his own tears, âThatâs what Iâd expect from my wife.â
Your mouth parts a little bit and you sniffle, holding onto the back of his arms like heâs your anchor, a tether to reality, to show you that this isnât a dream and that youâd wake up in your shack but that heâs here.
You feel his arms go lower though, grabbing your thighs from behind your skirts and petticoat, a sign that he wanted you to jump. So you oblige him, knowing heâd catch you regardless, and you silently wrap your legs around him again as his lips find yours once more, your chests moving up and down with labored breaths, but you don'tâ need air, you just need him.
âBed,â you murmur against his feverish lips, in between his dizzying kisses as your fingers slightly pull at his white strands, âP-please,â
Gojo pulls a little bit away, his eyes falling to your lips and then back up, almost in silent questioning. You nod once, needing for him to move, but he gets the gist, a smile, the first one you had seen that night, the first one from him you had seen in over a year, breaks onto his face, and he moves slightly back, nudging you with his nose to kiss him again and you do.Â
When his thighs hit the back of the bed you feel like a feather as he twists you around in his arms, your hands never disconnecting from his shoulders he gingerly puts you against the mattress, climbing over your body to resume his movements.Â
The two of you work in tandem, and you know when heâs growing restless, when he wants to explore the rest of your body. His lips trail from your lips to your jaw, pressing wet and splotchy kisses against the skin you have there before his lips move downwards, towards your throat.Â
You lift your chin a little bit, giving him more access as he sucks your skin into his mouth. You let out a little whimper at the feeling, his teeth grazing your soft skin, and one of your mouth slowly falls open in a little part.Â
Gojo feels like heâs finally taken his first breath of air when he sees the way heâs marking up your skin, and he knows that once heâs started, thereâs doubt heâd ever stop. Thereâs sixteen months of his lips and touch and mark absent from your skin, and he wants to make up for that.
His hands are at your waist, but his fingers dig into the fabric covering it, frustrated with the barrier thatâs still between the two of you.
Your eyes creep open when you feel him pull away, looking at his large body looming over yours with a little pout, one that disappear and melts into a little grin when you see him fumbling with the knot of your cloak, looking even more frustrated with trying to take off your bodice as quickly as possible.
âHere,â you whisper gently, your hand holding his as you move it away, sitting up on your elbows as you undo the knot, shrugging off the layer of warmth as you throw it to the side, âThereâs a lace up in the back,â you say, about to twist your body around to show him how to undo the bodice before you hear a loud, almost animated riiip!
You stare down at shock, your chest completely exposed to him, naked and bare, and then to his hands, the culprits for tearing the fabric as if it was a piece of parchment and not heavily lined and stitched top.
Your mouth drops open, hands flying to cover your breasts, but he tsks, swatting your hands aside.Â
âH-hey!â You exclaim, laughing a little bit at the way his eyes look at you, his brow cocked, heat blossoming across your cheeks and chest, your nipples pebbling in the cold air, âYou canât just - just rip it!âÂ
Gojo chuckles, rolling his eyes, moving up to get closer to your face as he leans down, pressing another searing kiss against your lips.Â
âI didnât wait all these months just to be halted by lace,â he mutters, his voice thick and primal and your breathing hitches at the sound, the near growl he has in his tone, and you donât have it in you to argue with him, desperately needing his hands on you as if youâd die without his touch.
His head dips as he looks down, his eyes finally falling onto your tits, your nipples, your chest that moves up and down with each exhale, and feels his mouth suddenly go dry. He remembers the first time he saw your naked top, remembers that night in the fields vividly, but now that heâs spent so long without being able to look at them, it feels as if heâs seeing you like this for the first time all over again.
âWait,â you sputter out quickly, your hands going up to your chest again and this time Gojo moves away, quickly and giving you some space as you sit up a little bit against the pillows and backboard, chewing on your lip in embarrassment, âI, um, I might look different, fromâŠfrom the last time you saw me.âÂ
His white brows pinch together in confusion, but he lets you have the time to gather the words, no matter how much they make you want to see yourself aflame in shame.
The bandages around your hands had slipped off with all the movement, your skin riddles with small scars and bruises that came with chopping and hauling woods. You sometimes looked in your little mirror and saw somebody different.
âMy hands,â you say, looking down at them, at the scratches from leaves and twigs, the coarseness on the pads of your fingers from wielding an axe for so many months, and you feel subconscious when his stare falls down to them, âAnd IâŠI donât know, the rest of me, itâs not-âÂ
He cuts you off, pulling your hands away from your chest, but not for the reason youâd expect. He brings them up to his lips, pressing a kiss against each knuckle, the backs of them, the bottoms of your palms, and the only thing you could do is watch with bated breath.
âDo you want to know what I thought when I saw you again? Just outside, in the snow?âÂ
You shake your head, eyes peering at him with an air of curiosity.
âAt first I thought that I had died,â he says with a chuckle, âBut when I saw you, saw your face, your nose, your eyes, your eyebrows, your cheeks, your hands,â he saws with a little grin, squeezing them in his hands, âI thought that I was dreaming. You looked just like you did when I dreamed of you. And when you woke up, and I saw your eyes again, I felt the happiest I have since the day I last saw you.â
Your shoulders fall, the tension in them dissipating, and you smile gently at him. Of course Gojo would know how to ease your worries, even after a year and counting of not seeing you. And he pauses, a silent talk happening between the two of you, one where he wanted to make sure you were still comfortable. To which you nod, biting your lips a little bit in nervousness, good nervousness, as you do.
His large hands falter, fingers reaching to grab the soft mounds. You watch through your lids that were slightly dropping, the anticipation causing a heat to blossom in your core, and you bite your lip as you wait for him to move.
âYouâre so beautiful,â he says in a hushed tone, wonder dripping from his voice as if he was seeing a statue come to life, a painting moving in front of him, âAs beautiful as the day I last saw you,â his fingers rub soothing circles on your waist, âMy beautiful girl,â he mutters, a small smile on his face that you mirror.
After another second of staring, Gojo makes his first decision, long slender fingers trailing up from your stomach, up your navel and to your left breast, cupping it, his thumb rubbing across your hard nipple as a small sigh escapes his lips.Â
âG-gods,â he stammers, squeezing the flesh, feeling like a teenage boy rather than the man heâs grown up to be, âSoft,â he chokes out, leaning his head down, âSo soft,â he murmurs, his lips latching onto it as you let out a gasp, his tongue rubbing over your areola and your back arches up into him.Â
He sucks the tit into his mouth, his other hand moving upwards to squeeze and knead the other one, not wanting to leave her unattended. Your lashes flutter at the feeling, mouth dropping open in a quiet sigh when you feel his teeth scrape against your nipple, biting down on it a little bit as your fingers curl into his hair.Â
âO-oh,â youâre able to say, ââToru, oh, oh gods,â you canât think, canât formulate a thought as he latches off with a pop, his chin dragging across your chest, his eyes never leaving yours as wrapped his swollen pink lips around your other tit.
He smiles a little bit at the sight of you crumbling from his mouth, flicking your nipple over with his tongue, biting down on this one as well as he moves upwards, sucking the skin around your breast, watching in satisfaction as dark hickeys bloom in the wake.
Your nails rake against his scalp, tugging a little harshly, but his eyes roll back at the feeling, loving the sting.
His lips continue to kiss your chest, moving down from the valley of your breasts and goes down, his spit shining in the candlelight as he kisses the soft skin of your stomach, just above your belly button and then lower, where the tear from your corset ends and the loops of your work skirt begins.Â
You let out a whine, a keel as he sucks the skin into his mouth.Â
âYouâre s-such a tease,â you stutter out, and he looks at you from his white lashes as his lips make another mark, his tongue moving as he licks the spot, lovingly, and you try to smile back, but your head falls back against the pillow no matter how hard you tried.Â
âIâm taking my time darling,â he corrects you, his hands moving the hem of your skirt, tugging it down a little bit but eyes eyes squint when he feels some resistance, âI need the woman I love to know just how much I cherish her,â he kisses your hip slowly, âWant her, âanother kiss to your lower stomach, âNeed her,â and he finishes by moving a little up to press a kiss to your sternum.
You catch your bottom lip beneath your teeth, one hand wringing into the sheets of the bed as you sigh shakily, the heat thatâs in your core turning into a fire, one that is growing and burning you from inside out.Â
Before everything happened, the two of you were burdened with the ever impending need of consummating the marriage. Gojoâs parents were understanding, never pushed the two of you, but the outside world seemed to ponder why your belly hadnât grown in the months you had been together. Truth be told, you were always nervous, not knowing how to do it, what to do, where things go, and so youâd freak whenever the two of you got close to having sex. So Gojo would always pull back, assuring you that your comfort was the most important thing to him. And though there were nights when he's eating you out, bringing you to ruin on his tongue and fingers, but that was it. But now, it feels different. There was a growing desire in you that felt like it was about to burst the longer you didnât feel him inside of you.
You can feel the ghost of his touch on your legs, the way his fingers trail slowly up your calves and to your knees, not long before settling on the meat of your thighs, squeezing them as he feels the soft plushness beneath him.Â
Itâs all so maddening.
ââT-toru?â Your hands search for his, your chest moving with each labored breath, and you feel his hands move upwards, lacing his fingers between yours as his eyes search for what it was you wanted, ââToru, please, oh, please, I need you,â you murmur weakly, âNeed you i-in me, please,â you beg, and see the way his pupils grow, his eyes barely even blue when you say the words inches away from his lips.
He lets out an animalistic grown, his eyes rolling back in his head as he plants a sloppy kiss against your lips, his hands falling down to the waistline of your skit, fingers fumbling to find the loop before he gives up, scrunching up the fabric between his fingers before you hear another rip. Looking down you see your skirt in tatters, the fabric looking like it had been mauled by a bear, and watch as he bundles it up and throws it to the side somewhere.
You go to argue but he raises a brow, wondering how you expected him to stay calm and put together when you utter such filthy words in his ear.
It takes you a second to find that youâre now completely naked beneath him, and while that doesnât cause you to cover up the way you expected, you find yourself pouting a little bit, something that Gojo notices.Â
âWhat?â He asks, his hand immediately cupping the side of your face, worried, âIs everything okay? Do you want to stop?âÂ
But you shake your head, hands pawing at his coat, nails scratching as you try to unloop the buttons.Â
ââS not fair,â you mumble, pointing to his chest and then to yours, your lips quirking up a little bit as your pout deepens, eyes all wide and open for him, the way you know makes his words turn to slurred speech, âIâm all bare and youâreâŠnotâŠsânot fair âToru,â there a little whine in your voice, one that causes his cheeks to go pink.
He grins, kissing your cheek apologetically as he nods in agreement.Â
âYouâre absolutely right darling,â he says, able to make quick work at tearing his coat off, swift finger fumbling to get his arms out of the sleeves, his hands going the either side of the tunic beneath him to lift it off and above his head, but the sudden touch of your hands against his skin makes him stop.Â
He looks down to where your fingers are lying, atop his neck, your eyes wavering when you hook something out from underneath the dress shirt.
How could you have forgotten?Â
You think to yourself, looking at the ring he had resting on the delicate gold chain. His wedding ring, the one he had told you ages ago he keeps around his neck so that it does fall off during training. Your fingers rub against it, feeling the cold sting of the gold, a familiar thing. But that wasnât what caught your attention. No, your eyes fall to something next to it.Â
The matching ring. Yours.
You let out a little shaky gasp, looking up to Gojo to only see him staring back at you, trying to gauge your reaction.Â
âIâŠâ he sighs, holding your hand in his, the one that was holding onto your ring, âI thought-âÂ
But you donât let him finish his rambling, pulling him down by the chain of the necklace as you slam your lips against his, a new set of tears sprouting in your eyes as you feel the rings dance around your neck.Â
Your fingers curl into his hair, digging them deep as your tears wet his cheek, your lips trembling against his as you hook a leg around his waist, your other hand holding onto the side of his face as you kiss him feverishly. You need him near you, need him to know just how much you have missed him, longed for him, need him.
But after a few seconds pass, he pulls away from you and your head moves up to chase him, but he sits up completely, your leg falling away from his waist as you watch him move his hands up to the necklace, tugging at it as it unclips from the back.Â
You watch silently as he slides your ring off of the chain, holding it in the palm of his hand as it shines brightly in the candlelight. His white lashes flutter against his cheek as he twists the ring around.Â
âMay I?â Gojo says quietly, and you falter, looking down at your hand.Â
The hand that youâve lived by for a while, using it for cutting logs and trees, to collect twigs and leaves. The hand riddles with scars and bruises, some fading, some new. The hand that always felt light, no matter how many things you were carrying in it. The reason you always knew, but never wanted to admit it.
You bring it closer to his own, watch as he turns the ring around to face your finger. You feel like the seconds have turned into hours, your mind flashing to when the last time he placed this ring on your finger, when you were a little bit younger and naive, not knowing heâd be placing it on your same finger nearly two years later, but this time out of love and not from an arrangement.Â
When it finally slides on you sigh a breath of relief, a tear escaping the corner of your eye, falling into your hairline as you hold the hand up, admiring its lost component that youâve missed so dearly.
âMy wife,â he whispers softly, almost to himself as if he couldnât believe what he was seeing, bringing your hand up to his lips as he presses a kiss that lays over the ring, holding onto your hand tight, giving it a squeeze as he gently set it back down on the bed. He places the necklace back over his neck, taking his tunic off with one fluid motion after it clasped into place.Â
You smile, full, content, and you lie back down against the pillows after a minute passed, your legs spreading a little bit to make room for him between them. His touch goes back up to your thighs, fingers searing in their place as his gaze finally, finally, drops down to your aching, burning core.
You watch as he undoes the buckle of his pants, his trousers being kicked off, his eyes never leaving your glistening folds, and you feel your heart rattle in your ribcage, waiting to just jump out.Â
Your eyes rake over his naked torso. Gods, he looked even bigger if that was possible. He riffs with even more muscles all across his chest, his arms, and his abs, looking even more pronounced from when you last saw him. His shoulders stand broad and sturdy, a thick vein running across the white trail of hair leading down, and you feel yourself growing wetter at the thought. Youâre so busy staring at him you donât even realize that he too has put his focus down. Down to where you need him the most.
Your mouth goes dry at the sight. Itâs the first time youâve seen it in its entirety. Sometimes youâve seen the outline from afar, feeling the length from layers of his clothes, but never like this, never so raw.Â
Itâs long, you think, and though youâve never seen anyone else cock before, you know this must be above what was normal. It curved upwards, not fully standing up from how heavy it was. You wanted to guess that it was at least eight inches, and gods, he was thick. His cockhead spurted more precum, pink, almost red, and it looked like it was about to burst.Â
Little white hairs grow from its base, soft and plush, and your eyes almost blur from lust at the sight.Â
Gojo scratches the back of his head almost in embarrassment, a little flush to his cheeks as he snaps his fingers in front of your face to get you to look back at him and not his little friend downstairs. You gulp, slowly finding his gaze as you stare at his pink face. A blush had traveled across his cheeks and went to his nose and jaw. Your head tilted slightly, bottom lip caught underneath your teeth as you squinted a little bit.Â
Was heâŠshy?
âAre youâŠâ You almost want to laugh, but stop yourself, a questioning look in your eyes as you sit up a little bit, resting on your elbows as you grin, âAre you blushing?âÂ
Gojo rolls his eyes at your teasing tone, pinching your waist as you squeal a little bit, a fit of laughter falling from your lips when he refuses to answer. Though he tries to look tough, his demeanor cracks when he hears the musical sound of you giggling, a new noise that seems to bring a fresh wave of colors back into his dull grey colored life.
âI know you havenât,â he swallows, his throat bobbing when he rubs a thumb slowly up and down your thigh, a comforting touch, âI know youâve never done this before. And if you want to wait-âÂ
âNo,â you say instantly, shaking your head, âNo, I want this. I want you. IâŠI need you, Saotru, I need you so bad I think Iâm going to start going crazy if you donâtâŠâ you trail off, swallowing thickly as you look back to his groin, and your fingers itch to hold it, to touch it, to feel the velvety skin beneath yours.
Gojoâs mouth goes dry, his lips parting as his pupils grow again.Â
You need him. You need him and oh gods does he need you. He thinks his heart will stop if he doesnât have your warmth circling him, pulling him closer to you.
He nods slowly, gnawing on his lip as he continues to rub soothing circles on your thighs, scratching his jaw as he thinks about how to go about this. Though he hates to even think about it, this wasnât his first time the way it was yours. But it was his first time with the woman he loved, and it felt like he was learning how to do it all over again.
âO-okay,â he says shakily, and here he looks like a young man in love, not the Northern warrior people forced him to become, just your Satoru, âIâll go slow, okay? Hold my hands, squeeze them as tight as you want. If it becomes too muchâŠâ his brow furrow, heart lurching at the thought of hurting you.
âThen Iâll let you know,â you finish with a smile, a promising one as you lean up to rest your forehead against his, âAnd Iâm a strong girl,â you say with a little tease, trying to relax the tension, âIt takes a lot to bring me down.âÂ
Gojo chuckles, nodding at your words as he leans a little closer to peck at your lips. You fall back down to the pillows, your legs spreading again as his hands move away form your thighs, going to your cunt, spreading some of his slick on them as he brings it to his cock, breathing slightly through his teeth as his fingers make contact with it, lubing it up as he lines it up with your entrance.Â
He looks at you once, and you nod, smiling, telling him you were ready.Â
He pushes the tip in, and feels your walls clench instantly around him. The stretch is there, and your eyes flutter shut, his hands traveling up through the sheets to grab at yours, your fingers lacing together as he brings them to your head, watching your reactions, fearful that it was too much.Â
But you nod again, wanting him to continue.Â
He pushes his way in little by little, your tight cunt fluttering and squeezing around him with each inch, biting down on your lips to keep the sounds in. Itâs not too much, but you know that if Gojo heard heâd stop it immediately. Because while it does hurt a little bit, the sting is good, and the more he lets you settle in it, the more it actually becomes pleasurable.Â
Gojo lets his cock sink into, letting you take all the time you need to adjust to his size, squeezing his hands as your fingers dig into his skin.
âG-good? Do you want to stop?â Heâs able to bite out, feeling like he was about to cum with the way youâre clenching around him. But his eyes are still filled with worry, not knowing what you were feeling with the way you were staying quiet.Â
You take a deep breath, biting the inside of your cheek as you slowly open your eyes, looking down to where your bodies were connected, and a little gasp escapes your lips when you see that heâs somehow managed to fit all of himself inside your tight walls, your cunt spasming around his girthy cock.Â
You moan, mouth falling open as you grip onto his hands again, quickly nodding, needing him to move.
And Gojo takes it.Â
He slowly begins to pull out, your cunt weeping wetly with his absence, and he gives it a second before he slams back in.Â
âUmph!â You whine, eyesight going white when his cockhead hit the spongy part of your cunt, nudging at it as you feel achingly full, a good full, âOooh, oh, âToru, itâsâŠohh,â and he knew it was a good oh because you were growing wetter around him, your slick staining his dick and the sheets beneath you.
He pulls his hips back out before he goes back in, creating a steady rhythm that makes your legs feel useful, wrapping around him to keep him as close to your middle as possible. You can hear the squelch whenever he pushes himself back inside, and can feel the way you spurt around him.
âYouâre doing great darling,â he says encouragingly, praising you as your finger clench and unclench, âDoinâ so great for me, you know? So perfect, my perfect wife, fuck, oh, s-shit,â
He pulls the back of your hand to his lips, kissing it before he lets go, bringing your now empty hand up to his shoulders, his own hand falling in between your bodies as his finger find your clit, rubbing and pinching at it with such a speed that you feel like youâre finally going towards the light.Â
âS-so tight,â he moans out, head falling down to your chest as he takes in a nipple between his teeth, sucking your tit into his mouth, needing something to with his tongue, âYouâre sâwarm, fuck, itâs so, so fucking good,â
You nod feverishly at his words, mewling in agreement, the ability to talk dying right in front of you, your walls turning to mush the more he slams himself inside of you.
It feels like lightning when his fingers continue their movements on your pulsating bud, his cock molding your cunt into its shape, your hot warmth trapping him inside like a honeypot, barely allowing him to move but pulling him back inside whenever he pulls away, needing to chase after the intoxicating feeling.Â
You feel like crying and laughing, never expecting to have this moment happen. You want to pinch yourself, to see if maybe you were dreaming. You feel all your emotions wash up as Gojo kisses your chest, feel the excruciating pain you first felt when you ran away, the lonely feeling when you were surviving on your own, to live by yourself, pretending that heâd be there to wake you up.
And sure, you dreamed that youâd see him again, but you never thought heâd believe you, let alone forgive you. You never thought heâd be like he always was, kind and caring, loving you with such tenderness that it feels like you never left. You never thought heâd fall in love with you twice, but maybe that was your biggest mistake. Because Gojo Satoru never stopped loving you just like you never stopped loving him.
You feel tears prickle as your eyes, your nose scrunching up to hide your sniffles, a sound that quickly catches his attention.Â
He looks up from your sternum, fear flooding through his eyes when he sees the tears that roll down the side of your face, the watery look of your eyes and the way you turn your head away so that he wouldnât see you.
He instantly stops, pulling out of you as his hands quickly go to your cheeks, tapping your jaw, worried, anxious as he begs for you to look at him.Â
âHey, hey,â he mutters quickly, his hands slightly trembling, thinking he had hurt you terribly, âWe can stop darling, itâs okay, donât worry,â but you shake your head, a tremor in your lips as you look at him, hands covering your face as you feel tears wet your finger.
âItâs not that,â you whisper, choking on a cry, ââS not that, it feels good, really good,â you add, sniffing again as your nose scrunches up. Gojo falters, rubbing away your stray tears, eyes looking everywhere to figure out what was wrong. He lets you find your words, even if it takes a minute.
ïżœïżœïżœIâŠI just,â you sigh, pushing your lips together tightly as you look at him, âI missed you so much Satoru, I m-missed you, and,â you feel his eyes gloss over, âAnd Iâm sorry I didnât write o-or tell you anything. I love you,â you tilt your head up slightly to kiss him softly, âI love you so much. I know this isnât what-âÂ
âNo,â he interrupts, shaking his head to cut you off, knowing that you might spiral, âI donât care about the time, darling, I donât care how long it took to have you again,â a tear off his falls on your cheek, âJust that I have you again. That I have the woman I love back in my arms is enough for me,â he promises and you laugh wetly, rubbing at your eyes.Â
He kisses your tears away, balancing himself above you as he nudges his nose against yours, something he does when he wants to catch your attention, when he knows youâre lost in your own mind.Â
You smile again, your hand falling in between your bodies to line himself up again with your entrance. He stutters, going to stop you, but you shake your head, wanting this, wanting this more than anything, and let your legs wrap around him again.Â
âI love you,â you whisper against his lips, feeling his cockhead push a little bit again past your aching walls.
His head drops down to your chest, not wanting you to see him break. Not wanting you to see the way he cracks because he never thought heâd hear you say those words again, never thought heâd see your lips form around those tender words, to give him such a divine feeling.Â
âI love you,â he says huskily, gasping it out as he sink in a little deeper, âI love you so much, so so much,â he kisses your chin, âSo much that even if it took a century to find you Iâd still love you as much as the day I first loved you,â
You giggle a little bit, kissing him messily as you moan against his lips, your cunt stretching again to fit his size, cradling the side of his face in your hands.
âIâmâŠIâm never letting go of y-you ever again,â you stammer, a little moan escaping you when a vein scratches deliciously against the side of your pulsing walls, ââM yours, S-satoru, all yours.âÂ
He groans, hands finding purchase on your waist as his eyes squeeze shut, too many feelings, all good feelings, coursing through him.
âEverything I have, e-eveyrthing I am and will be is yours,â he says, his voice breaking, âI was always yours to begin with.âÂ
Your nails scratch down the flexing and large muscles of his back, leaving red lines in their wake as he picks up his face, your own tears, spit, juices, everything, mixing together as you moan in tandem.
âSo good!â You whine, toes curling, your arm wrapping around his neck to pull him down to your chest until you were flush against each other, kissing against him messily, licking into his open mouth as you moan even louder when he angles his hips a certain way to reach even deep inside of you, if that was even possible, âT-thinkâŠthink Iâm âgonnaâŠ!â
That same buzz grows, that feeling of an incoming orgasm approaching you quickly. You were warned that it was difficult for a woman to finish during sex, and some of your friends often told you how they usually lay there until their husbands finished. But it wasnât like that with Gojo, not at all. You have no idea how much time has passed, but it feels far quicker than usual.
His fingers never give up their pace on your clit, and your walls clench around him, a new feeling growing inside of you.
ââToru, I think Iâm âgonna c-come,â you hiccup, your orgasm building up, âI t-thinkâŠâÂ
He nods, biting your bottom lip between his teeth, feeling his own release creeping up on him, feeling the white hot flash grow in his groins.
âI know darling, I k-know,â he mutters, kissing the side of your mouth as his motions quicken, needing to feel you come with him, âI know, let go, come on, I know you can, let go for me darling, there it is.â
You let out your last moan when you feel your orgasm wash over you.Â
Itâs blinding, exhilarating, and for a second you think you nearly died from how good it was.
You spray around his cock, gushing with your release. It wets his balls, dripping down onto the sheets, his abs shining wet from the way you squirted all over him. You want to feel embarrassed, but quite frankly canât because of how utterly spent you feel.
Gojo opens his mouth in a silent exhale when his own orgasm happens, spilling his cum deep inside of you, painting your walls white with his seed as he spurts, seeming like it was never ending.Â
You feel yourself clench around him at the feeling, your entire body feeling even warmer at his cum reaching deep inside of you. He came so much that it overflows from inside, coming out from the sides of your cunt, mixing with your own juices as the two of you try to calm down from your mind-shattering climaxes.Â
And despite how tired you feel, a giddy smile makes its way onto your face.Â
Your husband is right next to you. You could have only dreamed this moment happening.
Gojo looks down at you, smiling too, his head tilting to the side.Â
âW-what?â He asks with a quiet chuckle, his cock still nestled inside you, and the thought makes you feel even giddier, turning your face to the side, smushing it against the pillows to mute your bursts of laughter.
But itâs no use, because Gojo leans down to the side of your face, kissing your cheek and jaw gingerly as he smiles against your skin, wiping the excess tears away from the corners of your eyes.Â
âWhatâs got you laughing, hm?â He says, his voice slightly muffled against your cheek and you giggle even louder, unable to control it, his fingers not helping as they place tickling and fleeting touches all over our naked and sweaty skin. He canât help himself and laughs too, the sound hearty and loud, bouncing off the walls as you squirm around, your lips pulled wide, a toothy smile etched permanently onto your face.Â
âS-stop!â You wheeze out, his fingers everywhere, your arms, legs, thighs, stomach, fast and unforgiving, trying to squeeze every but of the wonderful sound out of you so he could bottle it up and keep it forever, âS-satoru, s-stop! Please!âÂ
You push at his chest, eyes bright and full of mirth, looking back at the man you loved, his smile bright and blinding. You want to have this moment forever, over and over again, never ending, and you never want it to end. He finally pulls away, looking down at you with such adoration and love in his shining eyes that you feel like youâre about to go blind.
He pulls himself out of your warmth, kissing the back of his teeth when you pulse around him again, and his limp cock hangs satisfied. He pushes the mixture of his cum and your juices back in with his thumb, something primal filling him seeing you full of his seed.Â
Your legs twitch, slapping his curious hand away when it starts to trail back up to your clit, and watch him send you a little wink, a little sign for whatâs to come later. Not now, though, because he sees the way your eyes are drooping, your hands resting on your stomach as you pat the empty space next to you.Â
Gojo obliges, falling down on the rumpled sheets, turning to the side to look at you.
You sigh, happy, full, and breaking at the seams with love. He lets the same sigh out, his pink lips pulled into an easy grin, months of exhaustion washing away from his body as he loops an arm under your waist, tugging you closer to his chest.
The two of you stay there in comfortable silence, grieving the months you lost, celebrating the moments just spent together, finding each other over and over again even if it tore you apart in the process.Â
He kisses your hairline, your forehead, the corners of your eyes. You preen like a cat, humming when you feel him kiss your cheek and your lips, pressing his last kiss to the tip of your nose, something he used to do when you were about to go to sleep.Â
âSleep nowâ he whispers against the side of your head, pulling the blanket to cover your bodies, his hold of you never letting go, âIâll be here when you wake up,â he smiles, pausing before saying, âI promise,âand you smile softly, craning your head up to look at him.Â
You fight back the tears, at the thought of waking up next to him, just like you always dreamed you would.Â
âYou promise?â You murmur, feeling one last tear fall, one tear of joy, utter joy, and he catches it with his thumb, his blue eyes wavering like a clear sky without a singular cloud, and you watch as his throat bobs, eyes roaming all over your face, still canât believing you were real. He hums deeply, tipping your chin up to meet him in one last longing kiss, lips moving gently along one another.
âI promise.â
#gojo x reader#gojo x reader angst#gojo x reader smut#gojo x you#gojo x you smut#gojo angst#satoru x reader#satoru x reader smut#gojo satoru x reader#jjk x reader#jjk x reader smut#jjk x reader angst#gojo satoru smut#gojo x reader fluff#satoru x you#jjk smut#gojo saturo#jjk#arranged!gojo
5K notes
·
View notes
Text
This is Ours [Logan Howlett]
Summary: It's your first time back at your grandparents' farm in years, and while many things are the same, one thing is not: they've hired a new farmhand.
Warnings: fem!reader, SMUT, sexual tension, angst, fluff, lots of feelings WC: 18.8k - MASTERLIST
A/N: apologies for dropping another long fic but i literally could not stop writing the juices were flowing. i really hope you enjoy this! i think its my fave so far :)
----
For as long as you can remember, summers were synonymous with your grandparents' farm. It was a tradition, one you held close to your heart. To you, your time there embodied your entire childhoodâdays spent under the sun, where the air was thick with the scent of wildflowers and the soothing chorus of cicadas filling the long, golden afternoons.
Mornings began early, with you bounding downstairs to join your grandparents for breakfast. The kitchen was always filled with the comforting aroma of fresh coffee and pancakes. Your grandfather would be at the table, engrossed in his newspaper, while your grandmother hummed softly as she cooked, the sound of the morning radio playing faintly in the background. Your days were spent exploring the fields, helping with the chores and horses, or sitting on the porch with your grandmother, listening to stories from her youth.
It couldnât get any more perfect than that.Â
But as the years passed, things changed. After you graduated high school, the summer visits became less frequent. University took up more of your time, and you were always busyâfirst with classes, then with internships, and finally with starting your career. The farm, once the centre of your world, became a place you could only visit if you were lucky, and even then, it was never for long.Â
You miss it.
This year, however, things were different. You found yourself in between jobs, with the first real break youâd had in what felt like forever. And when the moment the opportunity arose, you knew exactly where you wanted to go.Â
â
The drive to your grandparents' farm is a journey into the past. The country road, lined with trees that stretched out like old friends, brings back a flood of memories from your childhood: where youâre sitting in the back of your parentâs car vibrating with excitement. You pass the same fields, still as vast and green as you remember, dotted with flowers swaying gently in the breeze, and the old oak tree where you used to swing as a child stands tall, its branches reaching up to the sky as if welcoming you back.
When you finally pull up to the farmhouse, the sight of it fills you with a deep sense of nostalgia. The white paint is more chipped than you remember, the porch sags a little more in the middle, and you can tell that itâs been a while since the grass was last trimmed.Â
Stepping out of the car, the screen door squeaks open, and thereâs your grandmother, standing on the porch, wiping her hands on her apron. Sheâs smaller than you remember, more fragile, but the smile on her face is the sameâwarm, welcoming, and full of love. âThereâs my girl,â she calls out, rushing down the steps and into the driveway as fast as she can.Â
âGrandma!â you exclaim, hurrying toward her to wrap her in a hug.
She pulls back to look at you, her eyes twinkling despite the lines of age etched on her face. âYouâve grown even more beautiful, but you look tired. Weâll fix that with some good meals, wonât we?â
You laugh, nodding. âI missed your cooking.â
âAnd I missed having someone to cook for,â she replies with a chuckle, patting your cheek. âCome inside. Your grandpaâs been counting down the days until you got here.â
You grab your suitcase from your car and follow her into the house, the familiar scents of fresh bread and old wood enveloping you the minute you step inside. Itâs just as you rememberâcozy, lived-in, filled with the glow of years worth of love and memories. Your grandfather sits at the kitchen table, a pair of reading glasses perched on the tip of his nose as he reads a book. He looks up as you enter, and the moment he sees you, his face breaks into a wide grin.
âThereâs my favourite farmhand,â he jokes, letting out a grunt as he places one hand on the table, slowly pushes out of his chair.Â
âGrandpa,â you say, meeting him halfway for a hug.Â
âGot here just in time,â he says with a wink. âPlenty of work to do, you know.â
âI figured,â you reply, playfully nudging him. âIâm ready to get my hands dirty.â
âGood to hear,â he says, leaning back against the table for support. âThis old back of mine isnât what it used to be.â
Your grandmother sets a glass of lemonade in front of you and sits down, her eyes flicking toward the window. âWeâve had to make some changes around here, sweetheart,â she begins gently. âYour grandpa and I⊠well, we canât do as much as we used to.â
You hum, listening carefully. Seeing your grandparents grow older is difficultâit's a constant reminder that time is slipping away, and the moments you have together are becoming more precious with each passing day.
âWeâve hired some help,â she continues. âA man named Logan. Heâs been a blessing, really, taking care of the heavier work. But heâs⊠well, heâs not much of a talker.â
âLogan?â you ask, glancing out the window.Â
Thatâs when you see him. Tall and broad-shouldered, he is out by the barn, carrying some hay. Heâs wearing a worn-down flannel with jeans, and his dark hair is slightly tousled. Even from a distance, you can tell heâs strongâhe looks like he knows what heâs doing.Â
âYeah, Logan,â your grandfather confirms. âKeeps to himself mostly, but heâs getâs the job done. Donât mind his gruffness; heâs just not used to people fussing over him.â
âHeâs been here since last spring,â your grandmother adds. âWe needed the help, and he needed the work. Itâs been good for both sides. You should go and introduce yourself after you unpack, dear. Maybe get in some work before we sit for dinner later.â
Nodding, you walk up the stairs in the house and make your way to your room. It looks exactly the same as the last time you saw it. Your old stuffed animals are organized neatly on the shelf above the bed, and the quilt your grandmother made for you, with patches of faded fabric from old dresses and curtains, is spread across the bed the exact same way itâs always been.Â
The posters on the walls, the little knickknacks on the dresserâeverything is a snapshot of your younger self, preserved in this room like a time capsule. Itâs comforting, but also a little bittersweet, a reminder of how much time has passed since you had last visited.
After a few moments of reminiscing, you stand up and begin unpacking, carefully placing your clothes in the old wooden dresser. Each drawer creaks as you open it, the sound a part of this roomâs charm. You smile as you come across some of the little treasures you left behindâa pressed flower between the pages of an old book, a seashell from a family trip to the coast, and last, a picture of you and your grandparents taken one summer when you were about ten.
Youâre standing between them, beaming with a toothy grin, their arms wrapped around you in a warm embrace. The three of you are standing in front of the barn, with the sun setting behind you. You can almost hear your grandmotherâs laugh as the camera clicked, your grandfatherâs playful grumbling about having to pose for âjust one more picture.â The photo captures a moment of pure happiness, a snapshot of a simpler time.
Setting the photo down, you quickly begin to change into your designated farm clothes, and head out to meet the new face around here.Â
The trek to the barn isnât very long, just a few minutes away from the main house, and from the outside, you can hear the familiar sounds of workâfootsteps crunching on the hay-strewn floor, the creak of wood as something heavy is moved. You pause at the doorway, taking a moment to observe him before stepping inside. Heâs focused, his movements efficient as he lifts another bale of hay and stacks it with the others.Â
You take a deep breath, and step into the barn. âLogan?â you call out softly.
He doesnât stop what heâs doing, but with a slight pause and glance over his shoulder, his eyes, sharp and intense, meet yours, and thereâs a moment where youâre not sure what to say. âIâmââ
âI already know who you are,â he grunts, cutting you off.Â
His abruptness catches you off guard, but you quickly recover, nodding. âRight. I guess that makes sense.â
âIf you wanna help, thereâs a broom in the back shed,â he continues, going back to his work as if the conversation is already over. âYou could sweep up the hay.â
You bristle, a little surprised at how quickly he dismissed you, but youâre determined not to let it rattle you. After all, your grandparents did warn you that he wasnât much of a talker. âSure,â you say. âI can do that.â
As you turn to head toward the back shed, you find yourself lightly imitating his gruff tone under your breath, a flicker of irritation running through you. âThereâs a broom in the back shed. Yeah, obviously, I know where the broom would be,â you mutter.
In the shed, the broom is in fact, exactly where you expected it to be, and you huff, grabbing it and walking back to the barn. When you return, Logan is still hard at work, stacking the hay, and doesnât bother to acknowledge you yet again. You set to work sweeping, the rhythmic motion of the broom soon lulling you into a steady state. The barn is quiet, save for the soft shuffling of hay under your broom and the occasional grunt from Logan as he moves the heavy bales.
Time seems to pass slowly, the light outside growing softer as the sun dips lower in the sky. Youâre so caught up in your thoughts that you barely notice when Loganâs footsteps stop. Itâs only when his voice breaks the silence that youâre pulled back to the present.
âYour grandma called for dinner,â he says, causing you to jump a bit at the unexpectedness of his voice in the silence. Before you can respond, he turns and walks away, leaving you standing there with the broom still in hand. You let out a small sigh, feeling the tension in your shoulders. This is going to be a long few months, you think to yourself as you return the broom to its usual place and jog back to the farmhouse.
Inside, the kitchen smells like a warm hearty stew. The table is already set, the familiar blue-and-white checkered tablecloth in place, and your grandparents are seated, chatting quietly as they wait for you and Logan to join them.
You slide into the seat across from your grandmother just as Logan walks over from the sink, two glasses of water in his hands. He places one in front of you with a quick nod, and the other at his own seat, beside yours.
âSo,â your grandmother says, her eyes shining with curiosity as she looks between the both of you. âI take it youâve introduced yourselves to each other?â
You hesitate momentarily, your mind flashing back to your brief encounter in the barn. âYeah, we have,â you reply, managing a smile, if you can call it that.Â
Logan doesnât say anything, his focus on the bowl of stew in front of him. He doesnât seem interested in joining the conversation, which only adds to the growing sense of awkwardness you feel. You glance at him briefly, wondering if heâs always this closed off or if itâs just his way of dealing with new people.
âWell, thatâs good,â your grandmother says, either oblivious to the tension or choosing to ignore it. âLoganâs been a big help around here. Weâre so grateful to have him.â
Your grandfather hums in agreement, scooping a spoonful of stew into his mouth before adding, âHeâs got a strong work ethic. Doesnât shy away from the tough jobs, thatâs for sure.â
Nodding along, you feel the pressure to say something positive. âThatâs great. Itâs good to know the farmâs in good hands.â Even thought the words are definitely a bit forced, you mean it.Â
As the conversation continues, your grandparents shift the focus to you, asking about your job search and what youâve been up to since you last visited. You give them a brief rundown of the interviews youâve had, the options youâre considering, and the challenges youâve faced. You try to keep it light, not wanting to worry them with your uncertainty, but you canât help but notice the manâs presence beside you, still silent.Â
At one point, when youâre talking about finding a new apartment, you hear him let out a quiet scoff, and you cast a look over, catching the faintest hint of a smirk on his lips. Itâs gone almost as quickly as it appears, but itâs enough to make you pause. You want to ask him what that was about, to challenge him on whatever it is heâs thinking, but you bite your tongue. This isnât the time or place, not in front of your grandparents who are just happy to have everyone around the table.
They continue to chat with you, asking more about your plans and offering their usual words of encouragement. When dinner finally wraps up, your grandmother insists on cleaning up, waving you off when you offer to help. âYouâve had a long day, dear. Why donât you go relax? Logan can help me with the dishes.â
You smile. âThanks, Grandma.â
Heâs already started collecting the dishes by the time you stand up, but itâs like he refuses to recognize your existence, and that pisses you off.Â
â
The next morning, you wake before dawn, the world still wrapped in the gentle embrace of night, and for a moment, you lie still, listening to the deep, pulsing of the houseâthe way the wooden floors creak slightly as they settle, the distant sound of the wind rustling through the trees outside. The comfort of knowing your grandparents are asleep down the hall brings a sense of calm that you havenât felt in a long time.
Deciding to take advantage of the early hour, you slip out of bed, your feet brushing against the cool floor as you stretch, feeling the muscles in your body slowly wake. You dress quietly, pulling on a soft, worn sweater, and pad downstairs, careful to avoid the spots on the stairs that you know will creak.
You move through the kitchen as if on autopilot, your hands knowing exactly where everything is. You set the coffee to brew, and the rich aroma sills the room.
Reaching for the eggs, you crack a few of them into a bowl, and as youâre whisking, you let your mind wander, thinking about how to spend the day. The soft sizzle of butter in the pan gets your attention and you pour the eggs in, watching as they begin to set around the edges.Â
You pour yourself a cup of coffee, the steam rising from the mug in delicate spirals, and you take a sip, savouring the warmth and flavour hitting your tongue, while your gaze drifts over to the window that faces the back of the farmhouse.Â
Your grandparentsâ own horses, and you recognize some of them from when you were younger. It makes you happy knowing that theyâre still being well taken care of. The way the early light touches the land, and the morning dew covers the grass, you canât help but smile into your mug.Â
Slowly, you walk a bit closer to the window, eager to take in the view you had been missing all these years, when a figure standing over by the horses catches your eye. Itâs Logan, a small surprise given the early hourâyou didnât hear him wake upâbut he stands there, leaning casually against the fence, an apple in his hand.Â
You watch as he holds out the apple to one of the horses, his rough hand moving gently over its neck as it eats. Thereâs something unexpectedly tender in the way he interacts with the animal, a patience and care that you didnât expect to see from him, given how he acted yesterday.Â
He reaches into his pocket and pulls out another apple, offering it to the second horse, who hungrily accepts it. You continue to stare at the sight outside. This side of himâso different from the unapproachable exterior heâs shown so farâstirs something inside you, a desire to connect with him, to see if thereâs more to him than meets the eye.
On impulse, you quickly turn off the stove, grab a second cup of coffee and some toast youâve just buttered, and without overthinking it, you head outside. The morning air is cool against your skin as you make your way over to Logan.Â
As you approach, he keeps his attention focused on the horses. You take a moment, then clear your throat lightly, holding out the coffee with a tentative smile. âThought you might want some breakfast,â you offer, trying to keep your tone light and friendly.
He finally glances at you, his eyes briefly meeting yours. His expression is just as unreadable his had been in the last sixteen hours youâve known him, and then he grunts, âAlready ate,â and turns his attention back to the animals in front of him.
His curt, and honestly rude rebuffals really frustrate you. Itâs not like youâre asking him to wipe your ass after you go to the washroom, so you have absolutely no idea why heâs like this.Â
âAlright,â you mutter, lips pressed together in a thin line, and turn to head back into the kitchen.Â
Once inside, you set the untouched coffee and toast back on the counter with a sigh. This is so fucking awkward. Youâre going to be spending the next however-many-months with him, and you would love it if you could at the very least, get along. His rough-around-the-edges personality is not making this enjoyable for you, and youâre sure that he probably just seeâs you as an annoying nuisance.Â
And itâs not like youâre ever going to pull this card on him or anything, but you have been here longer than him, despite the fact that heâs acting like he owns the place. You get it, heâs been here for a for a while, and itâs only been him doing the work, blah blah. But youâve been helping and doing the work your entire childhoodâmissing a few years doesnât take away that fact.Â
With a heavy sigh, you open a cupboard and pull out a plate, scraping the eggs off the pan and setting them on it. Because your grandparentsâ are still asleep, all you can do is eat in silence.
â
Youâve decided that today you are going to trim the grass. Thereâs always something to do around here, and since the long grass was one of the first things you noticed upon arrival, you think itâs best to just get that chore over with, considering how long you know it will take.Â
Once youâve finished cleaning the dishes and pan, you go back upstairs into your room and get changed. Today, you put on a long sleeve, and a small vest over top. Your pants are some hand-me-down working pants from one of your older cousins, and you snatch a baseball cap from your closet for when it begins to get hotter out.Â
Walking to the back shed, you grab some tools for trimming the lawn. A lawn mower, a string trimmer, and a rake for after everythingâs been cut. Moving over to the back section of the lawn, you set the trimmer and rake against the barn and start using the mower. Itâs the same one your grandparents have used since you were a child, so itâs a reel lawn mower instead of those newer, more electrical ones youâve seen around the city.Â
You canât really complain about it, so you just begin, the steady repetitive action of moving the tool back and forth being somewhat therapeutic. The smell of freshly cut grass begins to hit your senses, and you truly feel at peace.Â
As the minutes pass, the sun rises higher, its warmth spreading across the fields. Youâre completely absorbed in your work, the rhythm of mowing and the occasional chirp of birds the only sounds around you. Youâve missed this. The sounds of cars honking and early morning city traffic has nothing on the serenity of country life.Â
Youâre just completing the first half when you sense movement nearby. Glancing up, you see Logan walking up to you, having grabbed the trimmer. He doesnât say anything, just starts up the machine and heads over to the next patch of grass within the area.
Thereâs a brief moment of eye-contact, like a subtle unspoken recognition to the effort you seem to be putting in. He gives you a small nod, and turns to focus on his task. The two of you work side by side, the hum of the machines, the scent of fresh-cut grass, and the warm sun overhead creating a strangely comforting atmosphere.Â
When you finally finish, few hours have passed, and you walk back over to the barn and grab a lawn bag and the rake. And because Loganâs machine was electric, he seems to have finished his section as well, so you begin raking up all the stray pieces of grass.Â
You quick to find out how awkward it is to hold the lawn bag open with one hand while trying to rake with the otherâthe grass keeps slipping out of the bag, and you canât help but feel a bit ridiculous as you fumble with the task. You scan around, hoping Logan wonât notice, but of course, heâs right there, watching as you flail around.
You feel a flush of embarrassment creep up your neck, but before you can say anything, he steps forward. Like usual it seems, he doesnât say a word, just holds out his hand as if asking for the rake. You falter briefly, not wanting to seem like you need his help, but at the same time you understand how much more efficient it would be if he joined.Â
Reluctantly, you hand it over, and he immediately starts working with the same steady efficiency he brought to trimming the grass. With both hands free, you manage the lawn bag more effectively, holding it open as Logan rakes the grass into neat piles.
The silence between you isnât uncomfortable; instead, it feels like a natural extension of the morningâs work. The sound of the rake scraping against the ground, the rustle of grass being gathered, and the occasional whinny from a horse nearby.Â
After the last of the grass is finally raked and bagged, you tie off the lawn bag and glance over at him. He leans the rake against the barn wall and meets your gaze. Thereâs something in the way he seems to stare at you head on this time, rather than just a quick look, that makes your chest fill with satisfaction.Â
You nod. âThanks.â
Logan dips his chin in return, then turns and heads back toward the barn. The heat of the sun really starts to hit you now, and you take a peak at your watch, noticing that itâs already lunch time. Knowing that even if you tried to invite him, heâs probably say no, you just walk back to the farmhouse alone.Â
â
The next couple of weeks unfold in the same way, moving with an almost predictable rhythm. Each morning, you wake before the sun, quietly slipping out of bed while your grandparentâs are still asleep. As you prepare and eat breakfast, you take your usual place by the kitchen window, watching as Logan interacts with the horses.Â
Then, as the sun rises higher, you head out to begin your chores around the farm. Sometimes, Logan joins you without a wordâhis presence now a familiar and abating part of your routineâor sometimes, you find yourself working alone, but even then, you know heâs never far away.Â
Youâve learned to read his silences, to understand that his gruff demeanor isnât necessarily unfriendliness, but rather his way of navigating the world. And though he doesnât speak much, his actions have a way of communicating more than words ever could.
One morning, as youâre finishing up breakfast, your grandparents announce their plans to head into one of the nearby cities for the day. âWe need to run some errands and pick up a few things,â your grandmother explains, her hands busy packing a small bag. âBut we were thinking it might be nice for the horses to get out and see some different scenery too.â
âThey havenât been to the pond in a while. Itâs good for them to stretch their legs and take in some new sights.â Your grandfather chimes in.Â
You nod, smiling at the thought. The pond is a beautiful spot, a peaceful place where the water runs clear and cool, surrounded by tall trees and soft grass. Itâs the perfect place to spend a day with the horses. âThat sounds like a great idea. Iâll take them out there for the day.â
Your grandmotherâs eyes light up as she hands you a basket. âI packed some food and a blanket for a picnic. There are also a couple of towels in case you want to swim. Itâll be a lovely day for it.â
âThank you,â you say, appreciating the thoughtfulness behind the preparations. You take the basket and head upstairs to get ready, the idea of spending the day by the pond filling you with excitement. Itâs been a long time since youâve been there last.Â
In your room, you change into your bathing suit, a simple bikini that youâve always loved for its comfort and ease. You slip on a loose shirt and shorts over it, then grab a few essentials before heading back downstairs. Your grandparents have already left, so you make your way out to the barn to prepare the horses.
As you start saddling them up, you notice Logan nearby, focused on his usual tasks. His presence has become so customary to you that you hardly think twice before calling out to him. âHey, Logan,â you say, catching his attention.
âIâm heading to the pond with the horses,â you tell him, nodding toward the saddled horses. âGrandmaâs packed some food and a blanket for a picnic. There are even towels if you want to swim. Youâre welcome to join us if youâd like.â
He hesitates, his gaze shifting to the horses, then back to you. After a moment, he mutters, âIâve never ridden a horse before.â
The admission takes you by surprise, and you raise an eyebrow. âReally? But youâve been here for over a year. I just assumedââ
He shakes his head slightly, cutting you off. âIâve always just walked alongside them. Holdinâ onto the reins is one thing, but Iâve never actually been on top of one.â
You canât help the small smile that tugs at your lips. âThatâs okay,â you say gently. âYou can still join us. You can walk alongside like you usually do, and tomorrow, if youâre up for it, Iâll teach you how to ride.â
Logan peers at you for a long moment, considering your words. Finally, he nods. âAlright. Iâll come with you.â
âGreat,â you reply, your smile widening. âI think youâll enjoy it.â
With that settled, you both finish preparing for the trip. Logan helps you load the picnic basket, blanket, and towels onto one of the horses. You mount your favourite horse, and gently click your heels into its side, starting the trip as he begins walking, horses in tow, beside you.Â
The journey to the pond is beautiful. The green trees that frame the pathway, the soft buzzing of nature, the sound of the horsesâ hooves. You and Logan exchange a few words, but for the most part, itâs silent.Â
When you reach the pond, the sight is just as picturesque as you remembered. The water sparkles under the sunlight, the tall trees casting dappled shadows across the grassy bank. You untie the horses, giving them plenty of room to graze and explore, before you grab the picnic basket, while he grabs the towels and blankets. Making your way over to the other side of the creek, you find a nice open patch of grass to set up on.
âIâm going for a quick dip,â you say as you go about stepping out of your shorts. Logan, who is sitting down, looks up, but his eyes seem to stop dead in their tracks when they settle on your body. You swear you can physically see his gaze darken as he takes in the sight of you stripping off your shirt. Itâs subtle, but a small shiver runs down your spine at the attention nonetheless.
Without waiting for a response, you turn and and head toward the pond. The temperature is perfect: just cool enough to be refreshing without being cold.
You dive in, the reservoir embracing you as a much-needed relief from the heat. Everything feels perfectâthe gentle current against your skin, the refreshing sensation of being submerged, and the weightlessness of floating just beneath the surface.Â
But when you lift your head out of the water, you and Logan immediately lock eyes.
Heâs lying back on the blanket, propped up on one elbow, and his focus is squarely on you. The intensity of his stare is like a physical force, pinning you in place. The world around you seems to fade away, leaving just the two of you suspended in time. Your breath catches in your throat, and you can feel a heat build within you, starting in your chest and traveling down, deeper, and deeperâŠBut then, just as suddenly as it began, he looks away, and if you were any closer, you may have been able to spot the red flush creeping up the back of his neck and to the tip of his ears.
The moment is over, but the enduring feeling of it stays with you as you swim back to the shore. Water drips from your body as you step out, and you reach for one of the towels your grandmother packed. Once youâve dried off, you walk over to where Logan is sitting and drop down beside him on the blanket.Â
You are aware of eyes on you again, though this time thereâs a hesitation in the way they travel over your form, as if heâs trying to be discreet but canât quite help himself. You pretend not to notice as you reach for the picnic basket.
âIâm starving,â you say, pulling out the sandwiches your grandmother packed. âWant one?â
He nods, sitting up a little straighter as you hand him a sandwich. After a few bites, curiosity gets the better of you, and you decide to break the ice. âSo,â you start, glancing over at him, âhow did you end up here, working on my grandparentsâ farm?â
He takes his time chewing and swallowing before he answers, his eyes focused on the food in his hands. âI was passing through,â he says finally. âDidnât plan on stayinâ. But your grandparents⊠theyâre good people. Needed help, so I stuck around.â
You nod, taking another bite. âThey are good people,â you agree, thinking of how much theyâve done for you over the years. âBut where were you headed before that? Where are you from?â
Logan pauses for a moment, then looks over at you. âAlberta,â he says. âGrew up there, mostly. Been a lot of places since, but Albertaâs homeâor was.â
You smile, finding comfort in the fact that heâs sharing a bit more. âAlbertaâs beautiful,â you say, remembering the few times youâd traveled through the province. âWhyâd you leave?â
He shrugs, glancing out toward the creek. âNeeded a change. Wanted to see what else was out there. Guess I got used to movinâ around, never really settlinâ anywhere.â
You nod thoughtfully, taking in his words. âMust have been hard, never really having a place to call home.â
His gaze meets yours, and thereâs a hint of something softer in his eyes. âYeah,â he admits, his voice quieter. âBut your grandparents⊠theyâve made it easier. This farm⊠itâs good.â
You smile warmly at him. âIâm glad youâre here. Youâve been a huge help to them. And⊠well, Iâve liked having you around.â
He glances at you, his expression softening just a fraction. âYeah, itâs been alright,â he mutters, a small, imperceptible smirk on his lips. You smile bashfully.
The next couple of hours pass by in a blur. Not much conversation happens, but rather, these weird periods of time where you feel as though your eyes are glued to him, and he you. Itâs differentâunexpectedâand to put it frankly, you feel a bit shy underneath his gaze.Â
Logan is attractive, anyone with eyes could see that, but it really wasnât just his face that pulled you in, it was him. The way he would silently help you with chores, his soft moments every morning with the horses, the way he subtly looks over your grandparentsâ when he thinks they arent watching. All of it. You want to spend more time with him, learn more about who he is, what he likes⊠all of it.
Soon enough, you both begin to pack up the picnic supplies, load up the horses, and head back to the farm. The horses seem content, having had a fun day grazing and napping by the pond, and you ride beside him as he walks. Every now and then, you catch him peeking up at you from under his eyelashes, his eyes lingering just a bit longer each time.Â
You can see your grandparentâs car in the driveway as you near the farm, meaning theyâve also returned from their day in the city. Leading the horses back into the barn, the two of you go through the motions of the familiar routine of unsaddling them, brushing them down, and making sure theyâre comfortable for the night.Â
Once theyâre all settled for the night, Logan steps back, wiping his hands on his jeans as he looks at you.Â
âSo âbout tomorrowâŠâ He begins, shifting slightly, as if unsure how to phrase what he wants to say. âYou really think you can teach me to ride?â
You grin excitedly. âOf course. Iâll come out after Iâve eaten breakfast.â
âAlright then,â he says, pivoting toward the doors, his lips twitching just barely, but enough. âLookinâ forward to it.â
Your fingers are twitching at your sides as you watch him leave. You wait a few moments, then head out as well, closing and locking up the barn for the night. When you step into the house, you find your grandparents in the living room, their faces lit by the soft glow of a lamp as they relax on the chesterfield.Â
âHow was your day?â your grandmother asks, looking up from her knitting with a bright smile.
âIt was nice,â you reply. âThe horses loved it, and the pond was as beautiful as ever. We had a picnic, and it was really peaceful.â
Your grandfather, whoâs been quietly sipping his tea, sets down his cup and regards you with a knowing look. âAnd Logan? Did he go with you?â
You nod, feeling a bit of warmth rise to your cheeks at the mention of their helper. âYeah, he came along. Heâs never ridden a horse before, so he just walked with us. But Iâm going to teach him tomorrow.â
Your grandparents exchange a look, and your grandmotherâs eyes sparkle with amusement and something more tender as she smiles at you. âThatâs good, dear. Heâs a bit of a mystery, that one, but I can tell heâs got a good heart. Sometimes people just need a little time to open up.â
Chatting with your grandparentâs a bit longer, you listen intently as they fill you in on their activities. You can faintly hear the sound of Loganâs footsteps upstairs as he gets ready for bed. The memory of his gaze on you makes your heart beat a smidge faster.Â
â
Logan is unsurprisingly already at the barn when you arrive the next morning. Heâs leaning against it, arms crossed over his chest.Â
âMorning,â you greet. âYou ready to get started?â
Logan glances at the horses, then back at you. âReady as Iâll ever be.â
You lead him over to the horses, choosing one of the gentler ones for him to work with, and begin by showing him how to properly saddle the horse, explaining each step as you go. Logan watches intently, though you can see the slight furrow in his brow as he takes in all the information.
As soon as the horse is all saddled up, you hand him the reins. âOkay, now itâs your turn. Go ahead and mount up.â
He wavers for just a moment, his eyes on the horse as if weighing his options. But then, with a deep breath, he grabs the saddle and swings himself up with ease. He sits stiffly at first, his hands gripping the reins a bit too tightly, but he doesnât look as uncomfortable as you would have expected. Definitely better than your first attempt.
âYouâre doing great,â you reassure him, moving to stand beside the horse. âJust relax. The horse can sense if youâre tense, so try to loosen up a bit.â
He takes another breath, visibly trying to relax his posture. Itâs clear that heâs out of his comfort zone, but heâs determined to push through. You walk him through the basics of steering and controlling the horse, keeping your tone calm and encouraging.
After a few minutes, you guide him around the paddock, walking alongside the horse to make sure he feels secure. Logan follows your instructions with serious concentration, his movements becoming more and more natural as he gets used to the rhythm of the horseâs steps.
âYouâre doing really well,â you tell him, smiling up at him. âWant to try picking up the pace a little?â
He glances down at you warily at first, but then he nods. âYeah. Letâs give it a shot.â
You guide him through a gentle trot, staying close enough to offer guidance but giving him enough space to figure things out on his own. The horse picks up speed, and you watch as he adjusts, his body moving in sync with the animalâs movements. Thereâs a moment when he looks down at you, a spark of surprise in his eyes as he realizes heâs actually getting the hang of it.
As the morning progresses, Logan becomes more comfortable in the saddle, his confidence growing with each passing minute. You spend the next hour practicing different techniques, guiding him through turns, stops, and even a slow canter. Heâs a quick learner, and despite the initial awkwardness, you can tell heâs starting to enjoy himself.
Eventually, you lead him back to the paddock, bringing the horse to a stop. He dismounts, still a bit tense but clearly pleased with himself. He hands you the reins, his eyes meeting yours with a look thatâs both grateful and slightly sheepish.
âNot bad for a first-timer,â you say with a grin, patting the horseâs neck.
He huffs a small laugh, rubbing the back of his neck. âYeah, well⊠youâre a good teacher.â
The compliment, simple as it is, makes your heart skip a beat. Thereâs something about the way he says it, the sincerity in his tone, that makes you feel a warm glow inside. He begins to walk toward the back shed, undoubtedly going to start on his morning chores, but you find yourself wanting to hold onto this moment just a bit longer.Â
âLogan,â you call out, stopping him in his tracks.
He turns back, his eyes questioning.
âThanks for this morning. I really enjoyed it.â
Logan studies you for a second, then he gives you a small smile. âYeah,â he says quietly. âMe too.â
â
The days come and go, blending into one another as your first month at the farm passes by in what feels like the blink of an eye. The sun seems to rise earlier and set later with each passing day, stretching the hours out in a way that makes everything feel both languid and endless, and the heat only intensifies, something you didnât think was possible.Â
Despite the longer days and rising temperatures, you and Loganâs daily routines have now intertwined in a way that feels as natural as breathing. The once solitary moments you spent watching him out with the horses have now become something shared. Every morning, without fail, the two of you meet by the barn, where the horses greet you with soft nickers and eager eyes, ready for their daily ride.
Heâs improved a lot. He no longer looks uncomfortable or stiff, and heâs able to guide his horse with an ease that surprises even him. You can see the subtle shift in his posture, the way he holds the reins with a sureness that wasnât there before.Â
And just like when you work on the farm together, sometimes, the two of you ride in a comfortable silenceâthe only sounds being the soft snorts of the horses and the creak of leather saddles. But more often than not, you chat about everything and nothing, your conversations easy and unforced.Â
Logan, who once spoke only in short, clipped sentences, has begun to open up more, sharing bits and pieces of his past, his thoughts, and his observations about life on the farm. You learn that he has a sarcastic, dry sense of humor, one that often catches you off guard and leaves you laughing in spite of yourself. He even joins you for your usual morning breakfast of eggs and toast, something that started only a few days into your new morning ritual.Â
Yet throughout all of this, thereâs a something growing between you and Logan, simmering just beneath the surface.Â
It manifests in the little moments, the stolen glances, and the accidental touches that donât really seem to be as accidental as you may think. Itâs in the way his eyes follow you when he thinks youâre not looking, how they intensify when you laugh, or how he seems to fixate on your hands as you work, as if heâs memorizing every movement.Â
Youâre not immune to it either. You find yourself hyper-aware of his presence, the way his proximity seems to alter the air around you. In one afternoon, youâre in the barn, and sorting through a pile of hay bales. Itâs hard, sweaty work, but the itâs kind that leaves you with a satisfying ache in your muscles by the end of the day. Logan is beside you, lifting the heavy bales with ease, his shirt sticking to his back, outlining the broad expanse of his shoulders. You catch yourself staring, and quickly look away, but not before he flicks his eyes over to yours.
He doesnât say anything, but you can see it in his eyes. Itâs like theyâre telling you that he knows exactly what you were thinking, where you were staring.Â
And when youâre both tending to the horses, something happens again. Youâre brushing one down, your fingers working through its mane, when Logan comes to stand beside you, so close that you can smell his natural musk.Â
âHere, let me help,â he says lowly, not waiting for a response as he reaches out, his hand covering yours. You glance up at him, and heâs already looking down at you. Youâre acutely aware of the feel of his hand over yours, the callousness of his skin against your own, and the way his thumb brushes lightly over your knuckles as if testing the waters.
Another time, while fixing the fence out in the field, youâre both working in tandem, passing tools back and forth. At one point, you reach for a hammer at the same time Logan does, and your fingers brush against his. Itâs a fleeting touch, but it feels like a spark in the summer heat, and for a heartbeat, you both freeze, caught in that split second of contact.
âSorry,â you mumble, pulling your hand back, but the apology feels hollow in the face of what youâre actually feeling.
âNo problem,â Logan replies, his voice gruffer than usual, as he hands you the tool.Â
You can feel it. Youâre not stupid. You know something is there, and you wonder how much longer you can resist itâhow much longer you can pretend that everything is fine. But Logan is a hard man to read, and youâre not sure if what youâre feeling is reciprocated, or if itâs just wishful thinking on your part. So you stay silent, letting the tension simmer, hoping that one day, one of you will have the courage to break it.
â
Youâre not the only who seeâs it.Â
âYou know,â your grandmother says one afternoon, as youâre helping them with a puzzle. âLogan has really come out of his shell since youâve been here.â
You blink, and glance over at her. âWhat do you mean?â
She looks up from the table, her eyes twinkling with a mischievous light. âOh, you know exactly what I mean,â she says with a knowing smile. âHeâs been here for over a year, and in all that time, weâve never seen him quite like this. Heâs always been polite, of course, but distant. Reserved. But now⊠well, itâs clear heâs become quite comfortable around you.â
Your grandfather places a piece in the board and nods in agreement. âSheâs right, you know. Loganâs always been a bit of a mystery, keeps to himself mostly. But ever since you arrived, heâs been different. More⊠engaged, I suppose you could say.â
You feel a flush of heat rising to your cheeks, your heart skipping a beat at their words. âI-I donât know about that,â you stammer, trying to brush it off. âWe just⊠work together a lot. Thatâs all.â
Chuckling, your grandmother leans forward slightly. âDarling, donât be modest. Itâd be obvious to anyone that thereâs something going on between the two of you. Heâs practically a different man when heâs around you. Why, just the other day, I caught him actually smiling while you two were out riding. I nearly fainted!â
âYouâve managed to do in weeks what we couldnât do in a year. Whatever it is, itâs good for him. And for you, too, Iâd wager,â your grandfather pipes in, sending you a wink.Â
Fidgeting with your hands, you feel like a deer caught in headlights, and youâre honestly not sure how to respond. âWeâre⊠friends,â you say, though the words feel inadequate even as you say them.Â
The woman across from you raises an eyebrow, clearly unconvinced. âHmm? Well, maybe so. But it seems to me that thereâs potential for something more there, if youâre both willing to see it.â
âI⊠I donât know,â you mumble, feeling flustered under their scrutiny. âHeâs just⊠heâs a complicated person.â
âEveryoneâs complicated, dear,â your grandfather says gently. âBut that doesnât mean theyâre not worth the effort. Oftentimes, the best things in life are the ones that take the most time to understand.â
Thereâs a moment of silence as their words sink in, the weight of their observations leaving you feeling exposed and uncertain. You hadnât fully allowed yourself to consider what you felt, let alone what Logan felt. But now, with your grandparentsâ teasing remarks, itâs impossible to ignore the possibility that there might be something more between you and Logan than just a budding friendship.
Your grandmother reaches over and gives your hand a comforting squeeze. âJust take it one day at a time, sweetheart. Whatever happens, weâre here for you.â
â
The following week, you find yourself itching for something newâa change in scenery. While the farm has been everything youâve wanted and more, you think itâd be nice to go on a drive, explore a small laketown you used to go to when you were younger. So, one morning, as you and Logan are unsaddling the horses, you muster the courage to extend an invitation thatâs been on your mind for days.
âSoâŠ,â you begin, trying to keep your tone casual. âI was thinking⊠maybe we could take a break from the farm this weekend and go into town. You know, just to get out for a bit, see something different.â
He pauses in his work, his hand stilling on the brush as he peers over at you with a raised eyebrow. âThe town?â he repeats, as if the idea is foreign to him.
âYeah,â you say, turning to face him fully. âI need to pick up a few things, and I thought it might be nice to have some company. We could grab lunch, maybe do some exploring⊠It doesnât have to be anything fancy. Just a change of pace.â
Thereâs a beat of silence as he considers your offer. His expression is guarded, as always, but you can see the wheels turning in his mind. Itâs clear that the idea of leaving the farm, even for a day, is something he hasnât done in a long timeâif ever.
âI donât know,â he eventually gets out, his tone uncertain. âBusy places are not really my thing.â
You feel a pang of disappointment at his hesitation, but youâre not ready to give up just yet. âI get that,â you say. âBut itâs not about how many people are there, really. Itâs about taking a break. Youâve been working so hard, and I think you deserve a day to relax. Plus, I could use your help carrying a few things,â you tease, hoping to coax him into agreeing.
Loganâs lips twitch as if heâs suppressing a smile, and for a split second you think heâs going to turn you down. But then he sighs, running a hand through his hair. âAlright,â he says, the word coming out almost reluctantly. âIâll go.â
You beam, unable to hide your enthusiasm. âWeâll leave early on Saturday, okay?â
âSaturday it is,â he confirms.
â
The rest of the week passes quickly, your anticipation for the trip into town growing with each passing day. You find yourself planning out the day in your head, imagining the places you might visit, the food you might try, and most of all, the chance to see Logan in a different environmentâaway from the farm and the routine that has defined your relationship so far.
So, when Saturday morning arrives, youâre up before the sun, too excited to sleep in. You dress in your favourite casual clothesâsomething comfortable but a bit more put-together than your usual farm attireâand head downstairs, where you find your grandparents surprisingly already up and about.
âOff to the city today, are you?â your grandmother asks with a smile as she hands you a thermos of coffee for the road.
âYep,â you reply, unable to keep the grin off your face. âand Iâm dragging Logan along with me.â
Your grandfather chuckles, shaking his head. âWell, that should be interesting. Donât think heâs much of a city slicker.â
âBe patient with him, dear,â your grandmother adds, laughing. âHeâs stepping out of his comfort zone for you.â
âI will,â you promise, taking the coffee and heading out the door.
Loganâs already waiting by the truck, and when you see him, you canât help but falter in your steps. The shirt heâs wearing clings to his muscular frame in a way that draws your eyes, accentuating the strength thatâs always been evident. His hair is slightly disheveled, and thereâs an almost shy quality to the way he stands there, his hands shoved into his pockets as if heâs not quite sure what to do with them.
You try to hide the fact that you were just checking him out as you ask, âReady?âÂ
ââCourse,â he replies, climbing into the passenger seat as you slide behind the wheel.
The highways are empty and the sky is clear. You chat easily about the things you need to pick up, the cute boutiques you want to visit, and even a few memories of the last time you visited the place. Logan listens more than he talks, but you can tell heâs starting to relax, the tightness in his shoulders easing as the distance passes by.
When you finally reach the town, the energy along the streets is a stark contrast to the quiet calm of the farm. The buildings tower above you, and the sidewalks are crowded with people going about their day.Â
Stepping out of the truck, you glance over at Logan. Itâs clear that heâs out of his element, but thereâs something cute about the way he takes it all in. âWhere to first?â He questions.Â
âWell,â you say, smiling at him, âI was thinking we could grab some breakfast at this little cafĂ© I know, then hit a few shops. Thereâs a bookstore I love that I think youâd like too.â
He nods, his expression softening slightly at the mention of a bookstore. âLead the way.â
You spend the morning wandering around, exploring the shops, and enjoying a nice breakfast together. At the bookstore, you lose track of time, browsing through the shelves and picking out a few titles that catch your eye. Logan surprises you by finding a book on woodworking, something heâs always been interested in but never had much time for. You can see the way his eyes light up as he flips through the pages, and it makes you smile, happy to see him enjoying something for himself.
After spending a few more hours of exploring, you suggest one last stop before heading backâa lookout point that offers a stunning view of the lake and the surrounding landscape. Logan agrees, and you drive up to the spot, parking the truck and leading him to a bench that overlooks the water.
The view is breathtaking. You both sit in silence for a while, just taking in the scenery, allowing the peacefulness of the moment to wash over you. He is staring out into the water with a thoughtful expression when you decide to interrupt his stupor.
âLogan,â you begin, the gentle breeze from the lake rustling through the trees, âwhat did you think of me when we first met?â
He turns his head slightly, his eyes meeting yours with a hint of surprise, as if he wasnât expecting the question. Then he pauses for a moment, looking back out at the lake, as if gathering his thoughts.
âI thought you were different,â he says slowly, each word carefully chosen. âYou didnât act like you were above the work. You jumped right in, got your hands dirty. Most people wouldnât do that.â
You smile at the memory, remembering how you started working together the moment you met. After all, you werenât just a visitorâyou were there to help, and you knew your way around the farm. âAnd now?â you ask, your heart beginning to beat just a little faster.
He remains quiet for a few moments, his focus still on the water. When he finally speaks, heâs timid, almost bashful, as if heâs revealing something heâs kept hidden for a long time.Â
âI think youâre beautiful,â he admits, his eyes flickering back to yours. âI thought that the first time I saw you, too. It was one of the first things that hit me. But itâs more than that. Now⊠now I think youâre perfect.â
The sincerity in his words catches you off guard, leaving you momentarily speechless. Your mouth parts in surprise, and all you can do is gawk, trying to process the depth of what heâs just said.
Logan shifts slightly, his gaze dropping to his hands as he continues. âI was⊠cold at first,â he murmurs, âDidnât know how else to act. You werenât like anyone Iâd ever met. I didnât know how to handle it. But what really got to me was how you didnât shy away from thatâyou didnât let my attitude push you away. That changed somethinâ in me.â
You want to say somethingâyou should say somethingâto acknowledge what he just said, bearing in mind that was probably the most amount of words to come out of his mouth in one go, but for some reason, you canât. The only thought running through your head is that you want to reach out and touch him, to close the small distance between you.
âWhat about you?â His voice is slightly more tentative now, and he definitely just asked that to fill the silence that you were ungraciously leaving. âWhat was your first impression of me?â
His question snaps you out of your thoughts, and you gulp, now knowing that your first impression of him was very different to his of you.Â
âHonestly? I thought you were rude as hell,â you say a bit nervously, watching as his eyebrows raise slightly in surprise. âYou were so gruff, so serious⊠I didnât know what to make of you at first. But then I saw the way you took care of the horses, the way you looked after the farm, and⊠it didnât take long for my opinion to change.â
He shifts, clearly caught off guard. You can see the faintest hint of a blush creeping up his neck as he takes in what you said, and it makes your smile widen.Â
âAndâŠYouâre kind,â you continue. âThereâs this gentleness about you that I wasnât expecting.â You suck in a shaky breath. âI think youâre pretty perfect now too, if Iâm being honest.â
The tint on his cheeks only deepens, and he looks away, flustered. Itâs a rare sightâseeing him like thisâand it makes you swoon.Â
âI donât know about thatâŠâ He mutters, a small, embarrassed smile tugging at the corners of his lips.Â
âI do,â you reply firmly. âYouâre more than you think you are, Logan.â
The genuineness in your words makes him look back at you, his eyes searching yours for somethingâreassurance, maybe, or confirmation that what youâre saying is real. Slowly, almost unconsciously, you both lean in closer, locked in a stare, your breaths mingling as the space between you shrinks. You can see the way his eyes flicker down to your lips, and you feel the same pull, the undeniable urge to close the distance and see what it would feel like to kiss him overriding all your senses.
Your chest pounds as you inch closer, until you can feel the warmth of his breath on your skin. But just as your lips are about to meet, a loud, piercing scream shatters the moment.
You both jerk back, startled, and whip your heads around to see a kid nearby, his face scrunched up in disgust as he frantically wipes at his shoulder. âEw! A seagull just pooped on me!â
The kidâs parents rush over, trying to console him as they pull out napkins, and you canât help but burst out laughing at the absurdity of the interruption. The sound of your laughter is contagious, and soon Logan is chuckling a bit too.
âWell, thatâs one way to kill the mood,â he mumbles under is breath.
Youâre still laughing, the remnants of your almost-kiss still in the back of your mind, but you know the moment has passed. âYeah,â you agree, trying to catch your breath. âGuess we should be thankful it wasnât us.â
Logan grins, warm and wide. âYeah, maybe we should.â
â
Driving back to the farm, neither of you say a word about what almost transpired at the lookout point, and youâre fine with that. Thereâs no need to fill the silence with words, no need to dissect the moment or what it could have led to. You donât want there to be any sort of pressure between you, any expectations. Even if, deep down, all you want is to climb him like a tree, to feel the solid strength of him beneath your hands, and to finally give in to the attraction thatâs been building throughout your time together.Â
Pulling into the driveway and shutting of the engine, you turn to him, and turns to you, his eyes meeting yours. âThanks for today,â he says sincerely âI⊠liked it.â
You smile, feeling a warmth spread through you at his words. âMe too,â you reply, your voice just as soft. âWe should do it again sometime.â
âYeah,â Logan agrees, his gaze holding yours a hint longer before he turns away, his hand reaching for the door handle. âWe should.â
â
A few days later, as everyone sits around the kitchen table after dinner, the evening suddenly takes on a new tone when your grandmother clears her throat and shoots an exchanges a conspiratorial glance at your grandfather.
âWeâve got some news,â she begins, her eyes shining with excitement. âYour grandfather and I have been invited to spend a week at the Summersâ cottage by the lake.â
You smile, genuinely happy for them. The Summers are longtime friends of your grandparents, and the idea of them getting a little vacation away sounds perfect. âThat sounds wonderful! You two deserve some time to relax.â
âWell, we thought so too,â your grandfather says. âBut that means weâll be leaving the farm in your capable hands.â
It takes a moment for the full meaning of his words to sink in. You and Logan⊠alone⊠for an entire week.
Your heart skips a beat and you glimpse over at Logan, whoâs sitting across the table from you, his expression neutral as he listens to your grandparents. But thereâs a quick flash of something that suggests heâs as aware of the situation as you are.
A voice brings you back to the moment. âNow, donât worry,â she says with a reassuring smile. âThereâs not much that needs doing, just the usual stuff. And weâll be back before you know it.â
Your grandfather leans back in his chair, crossing his arms over his chest as he scans between you and Logan. âWe trust you both to keep everything running smoothly,â he says, before he drops his voice to an embarrassingly low tone. âAnd to keep an eye on each other.â
You canât help but blush at his not-so-subtle innuendo, and you quickly drop your gaze to your hands, trying to hide the warmth creeping up your cheeks. The thought of spending an entire week alone with Logan is both thrilling and nerve-wracking. The lack of a bufferâyour grandparentsâmeans that literally anything could happen.Â
âDonât worry,â you finally manage to say. âWeâve got this. You two just enjoy your time away.â
Logan, who has been uncharacteristically quiet during the conversation, finally speaks up. âYeah,â he agrees, âWeâll take care of everything.â
â
Over the next couple of days, your grandparents pack their bags and make sure everything is in order before they leave. You help them with the small details, ensuring that the house is stocked with food and that all the usual chores are delegated properly.
Finally, the morning of their departure arrives. You stand by the front door, watching as your grandparents load their bags into the car. Your grandmother gives you a warm hug, âTake care, dear,â she says, kissing your cheek before hopping into the passengerâs seat.Â
Your grandfather shakes Loganâs hand, giving him a firm nod. âTake care of things.â
He hums. âI will. Enjoy yourselves.â
With that, your grandparents climb into the car, and after a final wave, they drive down the long, dusty road that leads away from the farm.Â
Thereâs a pause.Â
Suddenly, youâve become extremely aware of how close you two are standing.Â
âSo,â you start, hoping to ease a bit of the electricity beginning to spark. âI guess itâs just us now.â
Logan swallows thickly, his adams apple bobbing up and down. âYeah,â he replies a bit deeper than usual. âJust us.â
âWhat should we do first?â you ask as casually as possible.Â
He shrugs slightly, his lips curving into the faintest hint of a smile. âSame old, I guess. Canât let everythinâ fall apart right when they leave..â
âTrue. Letâs start with that.â
The two of you move into that familiar routine of farm work. Mucking out the stalls, hauling bags of feed from the shed to the barn, tending to the vegetable garden, you do it all. But even though youâre busy with work, thereâs an underlying jitter to everything you do, a heightened awareness of each otherâs presence that just wasnât there before. And itâs impossible to ignore. Each time you make eyecontact it feels charged, almost like a promise of whatâs to come, and it has your heart racing with exhilaration.Â
That evening, after the chores are done and the sun has dropped below the horizon, youâre in the kitchen, preparing dinner while Logan finishes up outside. The quiet of the farmhouse feels different without your grandparents thereâemptier, yet somehow more intimate. Domestic. You can hear the soft creak of the floorboards as he enters the house, the sound of him washing up in the sink.
And as the evening wears on, you find yourself drawing out cleaning the dishes, not wanting to end the day just yet. Logan stays close, drying the plates and placing them back in the cupboards.
âLong day,â he grunts.
âYeah,â you agree, glancing at him out of the corner of your eye. âBut it was nice. Peaceful.â
His eyes find yours. âPeaceful,â he echoes, though the word seems to hold a different meaning when he says it.
You both stay there, unmoving, until eventually, he takes a step back, as if sensing that the tension between you needs a moment to cool. âIâll check on the barn,â he says gruffly. âMake sure everythingâs locked up for the night.â
âOkay,â you reply, your voice softer than you intended.
Logan leaves to check on the barn, while heâs gone, your thoughts are a whirlwind of anticipation and nervous energy as you busy yourself with finishing up the remaining utensils.Â
Finally, unable to stay inside any longer, you decide to step outside, hoping the cool evening air will help clear your mind. You sink down onto the old porch swing, and pull your knees up to your chest, wrapping your arms around them as you observe the darkened landscape.
A few minutes later, you hear the soft crunch of gravel underfoot, and you glance over your shoulder to see Logan approaching the porch. He walks up the steps and pauses momentarily as if debating whether to join you. Then, with a soft sigh, he settles down beside you, his shoulder just barely brushing against yours.
Itâs now or never, you think. âWe have the place to ourselves now,â you state.Â
He turns his head slightly, giving you a sidelong look, the corner of his mouth quirking up into a small, knowing smirk. âIndeed we do,â he replies.
The simple acknowledgmentâand the way he says itâmakes your pulse quicken, and you canât help the small huff of exasperation that escapes your lips. Heâs always been so tame, so careful with his words, and while you appreciate the way heâs respected your space, youâre done with tiptoeing around.
âDo I need to spell it out for you, orââ But before you can finish the sentence, Logan moves.Â
His hand reaches out, rough and warm, to cup the back of your head. Your eyes widen, and your heart thuds in your chest upon realizing whatâs about to happen. And with a firm but gentle pull, he closes the distance between you, his lips crashing against yours.
You lose track of your surroundingsâthe night, the farm, everythingâas you give yourself into feel of his lips against yours. Itâs intense and claiming, a declaration of everything youâve both been too afraid to say.
His hand tangles in your hair, holding you close as he deepens the kiss, his other hand coming to rest on your waist, pulling you closer until thereâs no space left between you. Your hands find their way to his shoulders, gripping the fabric of his shirt as if to ground yourself in the moment, to make sure this is real, that heâs really here, kissing you.
Moving your lips against his with equal fervor, you pour the longing youâve been feeling all this time into it. The taste of him is intoxicating. Itâs something thatâs so uniquely himâso uniquely Loganâand you canât get enough. Youâve imagined this moment in the dead of night, but nothing compares to the reality of itâto the way he kisses you like youâre the only thing that matters.
When you finally pull back, out of breath and a little dazed, Loganâs forehead rests against yours, his breath coming in heavy, uneven pants. His eyes are smoldering and intense and his smirk is gone, replaced by a deep look of yearning.
âIâve wanted to do that for a long time,â he admits huskily. The way his voice has dropped three octaves isnât missed on you. You can practically feel it vibrate down in your puâ
âYouâre not the only one,â You whisper, interrupting your own thoughts. The connection between you has finally been acknowledged, and you feel a huge sense of relief.
He exhales a breath you didnât realize he was holding, and his hand slips from the back of your head to cup your face, his thumb tracing the line of your jaw. âGood,â he murmurs. âBecause I donât think I can hold back anymore.â
You lean in, pressing another kiss to his lips. âThen donât,â you whisper against his mouth.
The spark that has been ignited between you flares up into a full blown fire, and the next kiss quickly becomes more heated. Without breaking it, Loganâs grip on your waist tightens and you let out a soft gasp as he effortlessly lifts you onto his lap. Your legs straddle his hips, and you can feel the beginning of something growing underneath you.Â
The sensation is dizzying, and you instinctively press yourself closer, your fingers curling into his hair. The swing beneath you creaks softly with the movement, but neither of you pays it any mind, too lost in each other to care.
You shift slightly on his lap, grinding your hips against him, and the movement draws a deep, throaty groan from him. He pulls back just enough to catch his breath, âGod, you drive me crazy,â and then heâs on you again.Â
Itâs wild. Hot, and heavy, and utterly consuming. His hands move from your hips to grip your ass, guiding you to move against him. It feels so good, you release a relieved sigh into his mouth, before dropping your head onto his shoulder, too caught up in the pleasure.Â
The sounds of your moans fill the air as he continues grinding you against him, his own hips bucking up into your core.Â
Biting your lip, you lift your head slightly, a teasing smile tugs at the corners of your mouth as your eyes dart toward the open door of the farmhouse. âYou know,â you begin tilting forward to bite his ear, your voice low and playful, âas much as Iâm enjoying being out here, I think we should take this inside.â
Loganâs lips quirk up into a sexy smirk. âAs you wish,â he murmurs.
As you stand up, your legs a little shaky from what just occured, you peek back at him, and see that heâs already risen to his feet. Stepping closer, you slip your hand into his as you guide him toward the door. But just as you reach the threshold, a thought crosses your mind, and you pause, turning to look up at him with a mischievous glint in your eyes.
âWe gotta go to your room,â you say, running your hands up and down his arms, feeling them flex underneath your touch.âI donât think Iâm ready to defile my childhood bedroom just yet.â
He raises an eyebrow, a grin spreading across his face as he catches on to what youâre implying. âOh, is that so?â he asks, his tone filled with mock seriousness. You wink in return. grabbing one of his hands and dragging him inside.Â
By the time you reach his door, youâre practically vibrating with excitement, your breath coming in quick, shallow bursts. The room is simple, and the bed, neatly made, sits in the center of the room. You canât help but laugh at the thought of how different it will look in just a few moments.
You turn to face Logan, but he doesnât give you time to say anything, his hand reaching out, his fingers brushing against your cheek in a touch that is both tender and possessive. His thumb traces the line of your jaw as he cups your face, his eyes searching yours for any hint of hesitation.
But thereâs none. Youâve never been more sure of anything in your life. The need for him, for this, is so overwhelming that itâs taking every ounce of strength in you to keep from throwing yourself onto him.Â
His lips find yours once more, this time more urgent, more demanding than before. He pulls you closer, his body pressing against yours. âAre you sure about this?â he asks in between kisses.
âAbsolutely,â you mumble breathlessly, your hands sliding up his chest to curl around the back of his neck. The word barely leaves your lips before Logan reacts, a low hum rumbling in his chest as if your answer has unleashed something primal within him.
He kicks the door shut behind him with a force that makes the room tremble slightly, and in the same fluid motion, he pins you against the wall, lips never leaving yours as his body cages you in.
One of his thighs nudges its way between yours, the rough fabric of his jeans brushing against the sensitive spot between your legs. The friction is maddening, electric, and it hits just right, sending a jolt of pleasure up your spine that rips a moan from your throat.
The sound only spurs Logan on, his own need evident in the way he moves against you. He moves his mouth to your neck, trailing up and down it with hungrily. The feel of his mouth on your skin, the way his teeth graze your pulse point, causes you to arch against him, your hands clutching at his shoulders for support.
You can feel the warmth of his breath as he presses his lips to the sensitive spot just below your ear, his tongue flicking out to taste your skin, as his hands explore your body. Theyâre everywhereâone gripping your hip, holding you steady against the wall, the other sliding up your side to brush against the curve of your breast. His fingers find the hem of your shirt, tugging it up, and you lift your arms to help him, the fabric sliding up and over your head before itâs tossed carelessly to the floor.
Bringing his lips back to yours, the kiss is fiery, stealing all the oxygen from your lungs as he pushes you even harder into against the wall, his thigh still working its magic. You canât help the way your hips rock against him, the need for moreâmore pressure, more friction, more him.
Logan seems to sense your desperation, moaning when his hand slips down from your breast to the waistband of your jeans. He fumbles with the button for only a moment before he gets it open, his fingers slipping inside to brush against the soft skin of your lower belly. He pulls back just enough to look into your eyes, his gaze tempting and filled with a desire that matches your own.Â
âYouâre so damn beautiful,â he mutters, voice thick with want. âNo idea why I waited so long.â
You can barely think, let alone form words, but you manage to breathe out, âDonât need to wait any longer.â
The words seem to be all the encouragement he needs. In one swift motion, he slides your pants and underwear down your legs, his hands careful as he helps you step out of them. Youâre left standing before him, bare and vulnerable, but the way heâs staring at youâlike youâre the most beautiful thing heâs ever seenâmakes you feel powerful, desired in a way youâve never felt before.
He pulls you back into him, and this time, you can feel the hardness of his own desire against yoursâbareâ and it drives you insane. His grip finds you thighs as he lifts you off the ground and carries you the short distance to the bed. He lays you down gently on his bed, and breaks away long enough to strip off his own clothes. The sight of himâstrong, muscular, yoursâmakes your breath catch in your throat.Â
Thereâs a moment where heâs standing above you, just staring, his chest rising and falling with the effort to control himself. But then heâs on you again in an instant, his body pressing yours into the mattress, his lips claiming yours and leaving you dizzy.
You lean up into him, your hands sliding up his back, feeling the play of muscles beneath his skin as he moves against you. The need for more builds up to a breaking point, and you canât help the soft moan that escapes your lips as he grinds into you, hard and insistent against your core.
âLogan,â you breathe out. âPlease.â
His name on your lips seems to break the last of his control, a desperate groan ripping out of him. He begins travelling down your body, taking his time, his lips tracing a slow, deliberate path, each kiss leaving a burning trail in its wake. His hands follow the curve of your waist, your hips, his fingers digging into your skin with just the right amount of pressure to make you gasp. Your body is practically begging for him, and you know that youâre on the verge of begging too.
Once he makes it down to your thighs, he nudges them apart, giving him better access to you. He nips and bites at them, moaning along with you. And then, with a deep, almost possessive growl, he finally lowers his mouth to you, his tongue flicking out to taste you. You react immediately, a wave of pleasure coming over you, your hands fly into his hair, tugging at the strands as you try to pull him closer.
Loganâs hands tightening their grip on your thighs as he delves deeper. Youâre lost in the sensations, the pleasure growing and growing until itâs all you can think about, all you can feel. Your body is on fire, every nerve ending alight with desire, and the only thing that matters is the way he is making you feel, the way heâs driving you toward a release that you know will be earth-shattering.
And then, just as you think you canât take any more, he pulls back slightly, his lips still hovering over you as he looks up at you, eyes black. âTell me what you want,â he commands.
You can barely think, let alone form coherent words, but you manage to breathe out, âYou. I wantâI need you.â
That seems to be wanted he wanted to hear, so with a final kiss to your inner thigh, he moves back up your body, connecting his lips to yours again. You can taste yourself on his tongue as his hands slide under your thighs, lifting you slightly to position himself at your entrance.
The anticipation is almost too much, the need for him so immense that you canât hold back the whimper that escapes your lips as begins to push, the tip of him just barely inside you, teasing, testing your patience.
âOh god,â you moan. âI need you. Please.â
And then, finally, Logan gives you what youâve been wanting since that time at the pond. With one slow, deliberate thrust, he pushes inside you, filling you up completely.Â
Everything seems to stop for a moment, the only sound the ragged gasps of breath between you, the only feeling the overwhelming pleasure of being joined together like this, of finally having what youâve both wanted for so long.
He pauses, lowering his head in the crook of your neck as he lets you adjust to the feeling, his breath hot and heavy against your collarbone. And then he begins to move, slow and steady at first, each thrust driving you closer to the edge, the coil inside you tightening with every stroke. The feel of him inside you, the way he moves against you, is everything youâve been dreaming of and more, and you canât help the way your body responds to him, your hips lifting to meet his every movement.
The gentle, deliberate pace soon gives way to something more urgent, more desperate, as the need for release takes over. Each thrust drives you higher, the pleasure building to an almost unbearable level, until teetering on the edge.
And then, he sends you over it. The orgasm hits you like a tidal wave, your entire body shuddering with the intensity of it, your voice lost in the cry of pure ecstasy that escapes your lips. Logan follows you a moment later, his own release crashing into him hard, his body trembling against yours as he buries himself deep inside you, his breath hot and ragged against your neck as a loud, deep, groan reverberates in his throat.Â
Neither of you can move, lost in the aftermath of your shared pleasure, your bodies still entwined, as you come down from the high. He tightens his arms around you, pressing a kiss to your temple as he tries to catch his breath. And when he does, he pulls back just enough to look into your eyes.
âYou okay?â he murmurs.Â
You nod, reaching up to cup his face in your hands, your thumbs gently brushing over the rough stubble on his cheeks. âIâm more than okay,â you whisper back, voice full of emotion. âThat was⊠everything.â
A small smile tugs at the corners of Loganâs lips, and he leans down to press a soft kiss to your forehead, his arms still wrapped securely around you. âYeah, it was,â he agrees.
Eventually, he eases out of you with a tenderness that makes you sigh softly. He walks out into the washroom, and gets a warm towel, wiping you and himself down. After, he settles beside you on the bed, his arm draped over your waist, holding you close. The two of you stay like that for a long time, wrapped in each otherâs arms, until the exhaustion of the day begins to catch up with you, and you feel your eyes growing heavy.
âGet some rest,â you hear, âWeâve got plenty of time⊠no need to rush.â
You nod sleepily, snuggling closer to him as you let your eyes drift shut, the steady pulse of his heart lulling you into a peaceful sleep.Â
â
You wake to the feeling of warmth and security, Loganâs breathing against your ear, his arm still clinging possessively over your waist. The events of the previous night come rushing back, and a satisfied smile curves your lips as you snuggle closer to him.
But it isnât long before that peaceful contentment becomes something more. As you move around, the feel of his skin against yours, the warmth of his breath on your neck, and the memory of the passion ignites a familiar heat low in your belly
He stirs beside you, his hand tightening around your waist as if sensing your thoughts. Pulling you closer, his nose nuzzles against your neck, his lips brushing over the sensitive skin there.Â
His voice is rough with sleep as he murmurs against your skin, âMorningâŠâ
The simple word, spoken in that deep, gravelly tone, is enough to make you ache for him all over again. You turn in his arms, meeting his gaze, and the look in his eyesâdark and hungryâtells you that he feels the same way.Â
The morning starts in the best way possible, the both of you breathless, spent, and with the knowledge that this isnât a one-time thing. The connection between you is too strong, too consuming to be satisfied with just one night or even one morning. And as the day stretches out before you, the realization hits that this hunger, this need, will follow you both everywhere you go.
Throughout the week, the two of you are completely insatiable for each other. Itâs like the floodgates have opened and have no intention of closing. Every moment youâre together becomes an opportunity.Â
It starts innocently enoughâjust a kiss in the barn when youâre supposed to be checking on the horses. But that kiss quickly spirals and before you know it, Logan has you pressed up against the wooden wall, his lips on your neck, his hands roaming your body. The scent of hay and leather mixes with the heady scent of him as he takes you right there, the barn filled with the sound of your moans and the creak of the old wooden beams.
Or when youâre in the back shed, ostensibly looking for some tools to finish up some chores, the moment the door closes behind you, and you both know thereâs no point in pretending. Loganâs hands are on you before you can even say a word, lifting you onto the workbench with ease as he claims your lips in a searing kiss.Â
At the pond too, the tranquil, secluded spot now holds an entirely different kind of allure to what it had before. One afternoon, you find yourselves there again, the cool water calling your name. But as you strip down to swim, the sight of him watching you is enough to make it seem less inviting than the feel of his hands on your skin. You pull him in with you, the rippling water doing nothing to muffle the sounds of your shared pleasure.
By the end of the week, youâre exhausted but in the best possible way, your body and soul both filled with the kind of satisfaction that comes from truly giving in to what you want, to who you are together. And as the sun sets on the final day of your week alone together, you find yourselves back in Loganâs room, the place where it all began.Â
The bed, once neat and tidy, is now a tangle of sheets and pillows, the evidence of your shared moments of bliss scattered around the room. Logan lies beside you, his hand gently stroking your hair as you rest your head on his chest, the steady thrum of his heartbeat beneath your ear.
âThis week⊠itâs been more than I ever expected,â he admits quietly, his fingers brushing gently over your skin. âI donât want it to end.â
You lift your head to look at him, your eyes meeting his, and you can see the same emotion reflected thereâthe same desire to hold on to what youâve found together. âIt doesnât have to,â you reply. âWe donât have to go back to the way things were before.â
Loganâs hand tightens around yours, a small, almost imperceptible smile curving his lips. âNo, we donât,â he concurs.Â
â
The morning your grandparents arrive, you and Logan are in the kitchen, finishing up lunch. Your grandmother is the first to step through the door, her face lighting up as she sees the two of you. âWeâre back!â she announces, her voice cheerful as she sets her bag down by the door.
You rise to greet her, giving her a warm hug. âHow was the trip?â
âOh, it was lovely,â she replies, her eyes twinkling as she pulls back to look at you. âThe cottage was just as beautiful as ever. And the Summers send their love.â
Your grandfather enters next, a gleeful smile on his face as he takes in the sight of you and Logan in the kitchen, together. âEverything go smoothly while we were gone?â he asks.
You blush. âYes, everything was fine.â
Then they do that thing theyâve been doing the whole time youâve been with them, where they exchange a glanceâand share a look that speaks volumes. Itâs the kind of look that only comes from years of understanding each other without words, and you can tell they knew exactly what they were doing when they left you and Logan alone for the week.Â
âWell, thatâs good to hear,â your grandmother says with a mischievous smile, her eyes flicking between you two in a way that makes you wonder just how much theyâve guessed.
âSeems like you two managed just fine without us.â Your grandfather says, patting Logan on the shoulder.Â
You can feel the heat rising to your cheeks, and you steal a look at Logan, who meets your eyes with a small smirk. Itâs a way to tell you that heâs just as aware as you are of what your grandparents are thinking. But thereâs no embarrassment on his face, only a quiet confidence, a certainty that whatever happened between you was exactly what was meant to be.
â
The next month flies by, the routine of everything staying largely the same except for one thing. You and Logan are inseparable, drawn to each other like magnets, and with each passing day, it seems like that attraction only grows stronger.Â
Itâs not just the passion that binds you, though that spark is always there, and most often times doesnât go ignored. Itâs the little moments that fill your daysâthe way his hand brushes yours as you walk side by side, the way he rests a gentle hand on the small of your back when youâre working together in the barn, or the way his fingers grip your waist as he helps you mount your horse (even though you donât need it).Â
The work on the farm continues to get done, but thereâs a new layer to everything you doâa sense of shared purpose, of partnership. And even though the days are long and tiring, you find yourself looking forward to each task, knowing that Logan will be there beside you, sharing the load, offering his quiet support and his easy, comforting presence.
As the sun begins to rise one breakfast, you grandfather announces that he needs to run into town to pick up some tools for a repair project. Heâs heading out the door, and as he grabs his keys from the hook, he turns to Logan with a nod.
âLogan, why donât you come along? Could use an extra pair of hands,â he suggests, his tone casual.
Your man agrees without hesitation, always ready to lend a hand. But as he follows your grandfather out the door, he pauses for just a moment, whirling back to look at you, and what you see on his face is insaneâthereâs a deep yearning, a longing that tugs on your heartstrings. Itâs almost as if to say that he wishes he could stay, he doesnât want to be apart from you, even for the short trip into town.Â
You have half a mind to join them.Â
The intensity of that look lingers in the air long after heâs turned away and stepped out the door, and your grandmother doesnât miss a thing. Once the men are in the truck and begin to drive off the property, she turns to you with a teasing smile, one eyebrow raised in amusment.Â
âHeâs really got it bad for you, doesnât he?â she says affectionately. âIâve never seen a man look at a woman the way he looks at you.â
Your heart blooms in your chest. âI guess he does,â you reply, your voice soft, breathless as the weight of your feelings for him wash over you.Â
Your grandmother chuckles, stepping closer to place her hand on your arm âAnd youâve got it bad for him too, Iâd say.â
You laugh. âYeah, I do.â
â
Several weeks later, itâs raining. That should have been the first sign that this day wasnât going to go to plan. Youâre sitting inside, curled up next to Logan on the old chesterfield, his arm wrapped around you as you both enjoy the warmth and quiet of the afternoon.Â
But then you decide to go through some emailsâjust a quick check, nothing more, to clear out any lingering notifications. You unlock your phone and start scrolling through your inbox, Loganâs fingers tracing lazy circles on your shoulder as you do. Most of the emails are routineânewsletters, updates, the usual clutterâbut then you see it, nestled among the others like a tiny, unexpected bombshell.
Itâs an email from the company you applied to months ago, the one you almost forgot about in the blissful haze of farm life. The subject line makes your heart skip a beat: Congratulations! Offer of Employment.
Your breath catches, and you sit up a little straighter, your heart pounding in your chest as you open the email. The words leap off the screen: We are pleased to offer you the position, starting in two months.
You stare at the email, a mixture of shock and elation washing over you. This is itâyour dream job, the opportunity youâve been working toward for years. Itâs everything youâve ever wanted, the kind of position that could set the course for your entire career. But as the initial wave of excitement begins to ebb, a heavy weight settles in your chest, pulling you back down to earth.
You glance over at Logan, whoâs still relaxed beside you. His eyes are closed, his head resting back against the couch. The sight of him, so content, makes your heart ache, because with this job offer comes a harsh reality: accepting it means leaving him, leaving this life youâve built together, at least for a while. And you donât know whenâor even ifâyouâll be back.
Suddenly, his eyes flutter open in response to your shifting, and he looks over at you, concern flickering across his features. âWhatâs wrong?â he asks.
You take a deep breath, trying to steady your racing heart. âI⊠I just got an email,â you begin shakily as you turn the screen toward him so he can read it for himself.
He takes the phone from your hand, his eyes scanning the email. You watch his expression carefully, searching for any sign of what heâs feeling. At first, thereâs no reaction, just the steady, focused way he reads the words. Yet as he reaches the end, you see itâthe subtle tightening of his jaw, the pinching together of his eyebrows.Â
He hands the phone back to you wordlessly.
Then, âThis is what youâve been waiting for.â His voice is steady, but thereâs a sadness there too, a heaviness that you canât ignore.
You nod, feeling tears prick at the corners of your eyes. âYeah⊠it is.â
Thereâs a long stretch of nothing, the sound of the rain outside filling the silence between you. Logan looks away, his gaze fixed on the fire as if trying to find the right words. When he finally speaks, his voice is low, measured. âYou have to take it.â
You swallow hard. âBut what about us? I donât know when Iâll be back⊠or if Iâll even be able to come back.â
Loganâs hand tightens around yours, his grip firm, grounding. âWeâll figure it out,â he says, though you can hear the strain in his voice, the way heâs trying to hold back his own emotions for your sake. âYouâve worked too hard for this to pass it up.â
His words are supportive, encouraging, but you can see the the way heâs starting to close in on himself, as if already bracing himself for your departure. The thought of being apart from him is unbearable.
You lean into his touch, your head resting on his shoulder, and he wraps his arms around you, holding you close. âI donât want to leave you,â you whisper as the tears finally spill over.
He presses a kiss to the top of your head, his lips lingering there as if trying to convey all the things he canât bring himself to say. âI donât want you to leave either,â he admits. âBut Iâll be here when you get back. However long it takes.â
And so begins the countdown to your departure. You always knew it was going to come, always knew you were going to have to leave your grandparents again, but you didnât expect to find the love of your life here, and that makes it so much harder.
â
The remaining two months become a bittersweet blend of cherished moments and a looming sense of inevitability. Each day feels both precious and fleeting, a constant reminder that your time together is running out, and it shapes every decision, every action, every word between you.Â
In the past, your days had been filled with the rhythm of farm lifeâearly mornings, long hours of work, and evenings spent in each otherâs arms, exhausted but content. But now, thereâs a conscious effort to carve out time just for you two, time thatâs not dictated by chores or routine. You start taking more trips to the pond or into town, something you hadnât quite as often before.Â
These dates are different from the intense, passionate moments youâve shared on the farmâtheyâre softer, more tender, as if youâre both trying to imprint each otherâs presence into your memories. You hold hands as you walk on the streets, your fingers intertwined, and every now and then, Logan will pull you close, pressing a kiss to your temple or your lips, as if he needs to reassure himself that youâre still there with him.
Even the way you make love changes during these months. The hunger and desire that had once defined your physical relationship are still there, of courseâLoganâs touch still ignites a fire in you, and the need for each other still burns as hot as everâbut now, thereâs a new dimension to your intimacy, a slow, sensual depth that hadnât been there before.Â
Your grandparents, upon hearing the news, immediately noticed the change too. While they were so extremely happy for your new job opportunity, they also knew what it meant. Theyâve seen the way you and Logan have grown closer, the way your connection has deepened, and thereâs a quiet sadness in their eyes whenever they see you together.Â
Itâs not a sadness for themselves, but for the both of you.Â
They donât say much, but their understanding is palpable. They seem to give you more grace when it comes to doing work around the farm, trying to volunteer and do as much as they can so you two can spend time alone. No matter how much you refuse, they insist, pushing you two out the door with picnic basket and blankets.Â
Sitting on the porch one evening after a long day, your grandmother comes out to join you. She sits beside you, Loganâs arm is draped around your shoulders, and for a brief second, the three of you just sit in silence, watching the sunset.
âYou know,â your grandmother begins, her voice soft and filled with emotion, âI see the way you two look at each other. It reminds me of your grandfather and me when we were young.â
You smile, leaning into Loganâs side as you listen to her. âYou two have always been such an inspiration,â you say, meaning every word.
She chuckles, a wistful sound. âIt wasnât always easy, you know. There were times when we had to be apart, times when I wasnât sure if weâd make it through. But we did. And looking at you two now⊠I know youâll find a way.â
Logan squeezes your shoulder gently.. âWeâll figure it out,â he says, echoing the promise he made when you first told him about the job.
Your grandmother nods, reaching out to pat your knee. âI believe you will. But just know⊠itâs okay to be sad, to be scared. Thatâs part of loving someone.â
The words resonate with you, and you feel tears prick at the corners of your eyes. âThank you,â you whisper, your voice thick with emotion.
She smiles, a small, sad smile that holds a lifetime of wisdom. âYouâll be alright, my dear. Both of you.â
The days continue to slip by, and as the final weeks approach, your chest constantly feels tight. You try to make yourself feel better by lying in each otherâs arms at night, whispering about the future, about the dreams you have, and the plans youâll make when youâre together again. But still, itâs sad.Â
â
Your last day creeps up on you like a shadow at duskâinevitable, inescapable, and suddenly there, looming over everything. You wake up with a rock on your heart, the realization that this is itâyour final day on the farm, your last full day with Logan before everything changes.
He is still asleep beside you, holding you close, his face peaceful in the early morning quiet. For a moment, you just watch him, memorizing the lines of his face, the way his chest rises and falls with each breath, the way his hair falls across his forehead. You want to remember everything, to carry this image of him with you when you leave.
With a soft sigh, you carefully slip out of his embrace, trying not to wake him. You pad quietly to the window, staring out at the familiar landscape that has become so dear to you. The fields, the barn, the trees swaying gently in the breezeâitâs all so beautiful, so full of memories.
You donât realize youâre crying until you feel the wetness on your cheeks, and you quickly wipe the tears away, not wanting to start the day with sadness. But as you turn back to the bed, you see that Logan is awake, his eyes open and watching you. He doesnât say anything, but the look in his eyes says it allâhe knows what today means, and he feels it just as deeply as you do.
Wordlessly, you crawl back into bed, curling up against him, and you can feel the steady beat of his heart beneath your cheek, grounding you in the moment.
âMorning,â he murmurs.
âMorning,â you whisper back, your voice trembling slightly as you press your face into his chest, trying to hold back the tears that threaten to fall..
You just lie there together, wrapped in each otherâs arms, the weight of the day pressing down on you both. Eventually, Logan pulls back slightly, his hand cupping your face as he looks into your eyes. âLetâs go to the pond,â he says delicately. âJust you and me.â
You nod, unable to find the words to respond. The pond has always been your special place, a sanctuary where youâve shared so many intimate moments, where it feels like it all began, and so itâs only right that would spend your last day there, away from everything else, just the two of you.
You decide to walk to the pond. Loganâs hand is warm and solid in yours, and you hold on to it tightly, physically unable to tear yourself from his touch. And when you reach it, a fresh wave of emotion crashes over you.Â
You and Logan stand at the waterâs edge, just staring out into the pond. Then, you turn to him, your eyes filled with tears, and without hesitation, he pulls you into his arms, holding you close.
The kiss that follows is desperate, full of the need to feel connected, to hold on to each other for as long as you can. Itâs not like the slow, sensual lovemaking of the past weeksâthis is something desperate. Stumbling back toward the soft grass by the waterâs edge, Logan gently lays you down, his hands trembling slightly as he undresses you, tears stinging behind his eyelids. As he moves over you, his body pressing against yours, thereâs only this moment.Â
With his skin against yours, his breath on your neck, your bodies move together. Tears spill from your eyes as you hold him tight, your hands unable to stay still, running over every part of him you can touch, needing to feel him, to anchor yourself. His lips find yours again, and the kiss is deep, full of all the love, all the emotion that neither of you can put into words.Â
Itâs a kiss that says goodbye, that says I love you, that says Iâll wait for you.
After reaching the peak of pleasure, you cling to each other, the tears flowing freely now, a mix of sorrow and love and everything in between.
Logan holds you close, his forehead pressed against yours, his breath ragged, his eyes wet with tears. âI love you,â he whispers, his voice cracking with emotion. âIâll always love you.â
âI love you too,â you choke out. âMore than anything.â
â
Driving away from the farm was probably the hardest thing you've ever had to do in your entire life. Harder than moving away for university, harder than securing your first full-time job, harder than living alone in a city where you knew no one. This was differentâthis was leaving behind a piece of your heart, a part of your soul that you knew would never be whole until you returned.
Your hands grip the steering wheel tightly, your knuckles white as you try to focus on the road ahead, but itâs impossible to shake the image thatâs burned into your mindâthe image of Logan and your grandparents standing on the porch as you drove away. The sight of them, standing there side by side, watching you leave, is something that will haunt you for a long time.Â
Logan, his stoic expression barely masking the pain in his eyes, his hands clenched at his sides as if holding himself back from running after you. Your grandmother, her face a mixture of sadness and pride, eyes glistening with unshed tears. And your grandfather, standing tall and strong, but with a heaviness in his gaze that spoke of understanding, of experience, of knowing just how hard this had to be.
The tears that had been threatening to fall finally break free, streaming down your face as you drive, blurring your vision and making it hard to see the road ahead. You swipe at them angrily, frustrated with yourself for breaking down like this, but itâs no use. The emotions are too strong, too overwhelming, and soon youâre bawling your eyes out, the sound of your own crying filling the car.Â
You can barely catch your breath, each sob wracking your body with a force that leaves you feeling drained, exhausted, and utterly broken.
â
The time apart is worse than you ever imagined it would be. In the beginning, you and Logan make every effort to stay in touch. The calls and texts are your lifeline, little threads that keep you connected to the farm, to him, to the life you left behind.Â
At first, you talk every day. his voice a comfort, a reminder that youâre not alone, that heâs still there, waiting for you. He tells you about his days, about how he still rides the horses every morning, just like he used to when you were there.Â
But as time goes on, the time between each call grows. Your demanding work schedule, and the unreliable service in the countryside, make it harder and harder to find moments when youâre both free to talk. The texts, once long and filled with details about your lives, become shorter, more practical. You try to stay connected, but the distance feels like a growing chasm between you, one that neither of you can quite figure out how to bridge.
Years pass by in a blur. You have no time to spend at the farm, with it being too far away for just a weekend trip, and other commitments seem to always get in the way.Â
Then, one day, the call comesâthe call youâve dreaded but somehow always knew would happen. Itâs your grandmother, her voice trembling as she tells you that your grandfather has passed away.Â
You take leave from work immediately, making arrangements to drive back to the farm and spend a night. The funeral is simple, attended by a few close friends and neighbours, but the absence of your grandfather is felt deeply by everyone.
And heâs there tooâLogan. Heâs standing off to the side, his broad shoulders slightly hunched, his face etched with grief. When your eyes meet, itâs as if no time has passed at all. You walk over to him, and without a word, he pulls you into his arms, holding you tightly as if afraid to let go.Â
The few years apart, the pain of the distance, all of it melts away in that embrace. You bury your face in his chest, breathing in the familiar scent of him that youâve missed so much, and the tears you thought you had run out of begin to fall.Â
âIâm so sorry,â you whisper, everything hitting you at onceâthe loss of your grandfather, the years youâve spent apart, the life you could have had together.
He hugs you tighter, his hand gently stroking your hair. âI miss you,â he murmurs thickly. âEvery damn day, I miss you.â
You spend the rest of the day together, holding each other, talking, catching up, and remembering your grandfather. Logan tells you about the farm, about how heâs kept things going, but you can hear the weariness in his voice, the toll that time and loneliness have taken on him. Itâs clear that the farm hasnât been the same without you, just as your life hasnât been the same without him.
Later that evening, after the guests have left and the house has grown quiet, your grandmother pulls you aside. Her eyes are tired, full of sorrow, but thereâs a calm acceptance in her expression. âIâve made a decision,â she says softly, her voice steady. âIâm going to sell the farm.â
The words hit you like a punch to the gut, but before you can protest, she continues. âNot to just anyone,â she adds quickly. âTo Logan. Heâs been more than just a farmhand, you know that. This place is as much his as it was ours. But⊠I need to move into permanent care. I canât manage on my own anymore.â
You nod, understanding but feeling a deep sadness all the same. The farm has been a part of your life for so long, and the thought of it changing hands, even to Logan, feels like another loss. But thereâs also a sense of relief, knowing that it will be in good hands, that it will stay in the family, in a way.
That night, youâre tangled in Loganâs arms. Leaving him the next morning is just as hard the second time as it was the first.
â
Five years since that fateful summer have passed, and in that time, your life changes in ways you never expected. Youâve built a successful career, made some amazing friends, travelled the world, but the hustle and bustle of city life has taken its toll. The stress, the strain, the dissatisfactionâit begins to weigh on you more and more.Â
So, you make a decision.
You quit your job, find something remote, something that allows you to work from anywhere, as long as you can drive into the city every few weeks to drop off documents. Itâs a drastic change, but itâs one you need. You realize that the life you want, the life youâve been yearning for, isnât in the city.Â
Itâs back at the farm.
As you step out of your car, you see him. Heâs by the paddock, feeding the horses apples, just like he used to. His back is to you at first, but then he turns, and his eyes meet yours, and time stops.Â
Thereâs a lifetime of emotions in that lookâlove, longing, hope. Most of all, thereâs recognition, as if both of you know that this is it, that this is the moment youâve been waiting for all these years.
And when youâre finally standing in front of him again, he reaches out, his hand trembling slightly as he cups your face, his thumb brushing over your cheek the same way it did all those years ago.Â
----
#deadpool and wolverine#logan howlett#logan howlett fic#logan x reader#x men#wolverine#deadpool movie#logan howlett imagine#logan howlett x reader#deadpool 3#hugh jackman#james logan howlett#logan howlett smut#wolverine angst#wolverine smut#wolverine x reader#wolverine x you#james howlett#logan howlett angst#logan howlett x you#logan howlett fanfiction#logan wolverine#the wolverine#marvel#marvel fanfiction
8K notes
·
View notes
Text
Okay gamers I need your help should I push for sharing a hotel room OR a cottage with my crush because apparently we might have Options
#Shfnsjf you don't have to actually share your opinion if you don't want to I'm just very very undecided on which option I would prefer#On one hand:#Cottage is cozy and could end up really enjoyable if we decide to cook food and breakfast together#And also I'd get to sleep on a loft which is like climbing a tree house with a Whole half floor to myself which would be nice! Different!#But - if we end up just buying takeout every dinner it could end up being So Boring. So quiet.#Or even worse: if he gets sick and I travel alone I'd have to rent a cottage ALONE from a complete stranger of a 'private renter' man#And thatâs a risk factor if I've ever heard of one (not to mention I'd be bored out of my skull alone for five days)#On the other hand:#Hotel room would mean we get to sleep RIGHT. NEXT. TO EACH OTHER. FIVE NIGHTS IN A ROW#Not just completely alone but also super close and with potential for so many casual silences or intimate conversations and hgggggh#Unless he's a jogging in the morning person - We'd wake up and eat breakfast at the same time! Brush our teeth together in the bathroom!#Use it as an extra dressing room to solve the logistics of giving each other some privacy when changing in to and out of our pajamas!#Imagine how cute it could be to introduce some kind of knocking system to signal 'I'm ready!' and for him to respond 'Go on!'#Or 'Hang on a second!' to sync our dressing routine#Aaaaa~#But but buttttt - what if he always finds a reason to stay outside of our room?#What if he prefers to go outside and network with other members in the evenings?#What if he manages to find another man willing to share a room with him and he just decides to leave ours for me to use?#There are so many ways where things could end up less interesting than I'd hoped or for him to decide to put space between us#'Just because' or because he wants to call his family or maybe because he doesnât even realize I want to share my time with him#I'M JUST NOT SURE WHICH OPTION OFFERS THE MOST POSITIVES WITH THE FEWEST DRAWBACKS#I've even created Lists and I'm no closer to finding out which option I'd prefer#The cottage is a gamble but could offer the highest bonding reward while the hotel room is the safest option#With the most convenient location in terms of proximity to restaurants and city center but much further from the conference center#Gamers: I'm at a loss. Help
1 note
·
View note
Text
Here's the top 2 stories from each of Fix The News's six categories:
1. A game-changing HIV drug was the biggest story of 2024
In what Science called the 'breakthrough of the year', researchers revealed in June that a twice-yearly drug called lenacapavir reduced HIV infections in a trial in Africa to zeroâan astonishing 100% efficacy, and the closest thing to a vaccine in four decades of research. Things moved quick; by October, the maker of the drug, Gilead, had agreed to produce an affordable version for 120 resource-limited countries, and by December trials were underway for a version that could prevent infection with just a single shot per year. 'I got cold shivers. After all our years of sadness, particularly over vaccines, this truly is surreal.'
2. Another incredible year for disease elimination
Jordan became the first country to eliminate leprosy, Chad eliminated sleeping sickness, Guinea eliminated maternal and neonatal tetanus, Belize, Jamaica, and Saint Vincent & the Grenadines eliminated mother-to-child transmission of HIV and syphilis, India achieved the WHO target for eliminating black fever, India, Viet Nam and Pakistan eliminated trachoma, the worldâs leading infectious cause of blindness, and Brazil and Timor Leste eliminated elephantiasis.
15. The EU passed a landmark nature restoration law
When countries pass environmental legislation, itâs big news; when an entire continent mandates the protection of nature, it signals a profound shift. Under the new law, which passed on a knife-edge vote in June 2024, all 27 member states are legally required to restore at least 20% of land and sea by 2030, and degraded ecosystems by 2050. This is one of the worldâs most ambitious pieces of legislation and it didnât come easy; but the payoff will be huge - from tackling biodiversity loss and climate change to enhancing food security.
16. Deforestation in the Amazon halved in two years
Brazilâs space agency, INPE, confirmed a second consecutive year of declining deforestation in the Brazilian Amazon. That means deforestation rates have roughly halved under Lula, and are now approaching all time lows. In Colombia, deforestation dropped by 36%, hitting a 23-year low. Bolivia created four new protected areas, a huge new new state park was created in ParĂĄ to protect some of the oldest and tallest tree species in the tropical Americas and a new study revealed that more of the Amazon is protected than we originally thought, with 62.4% of the rainforest now under some form of conservation management.
39. Millions more children got an education
Staggering statistics incoming: between 2000 and 2023, the number of children and adolescents not attending school fell by nearly 40%, and Eastern and Southern Africa, achieved gender parity in primary education, with 25 million more girls are enrolled in primary school today than in the early 2000s. Since 2015, an additional 110 million children have entered school worldwide, and 40 million more young people are completing secondary school.
40. We fed around a quarter of the world's kids at school
Around 480 million students are now getting fed at school, up from 319 million before the pandemic, and 104 countries have joined a global coalition to promote school meals, School feeding policies are now in place in 48 countries in Africa, and this year Nigeria announced plans to expand school meals to 20 million children by 2025, Kenya committed to expanding its program from two million to ten million children by the end of the decade, and Indonesia pledged to provide lunches to all 78 million of its students, in what will be the world's largest free school meals program.
50. Solar installations shattered all records
Global solar installations look set to reach an unprecedented 660GW in 2024, up 50% from 2023's previous record. The pace of deployment has become almost unfathomable - in 2010, it took a month to install a gigawatt, by 2016, a week, and in 2024, just 12 hours. Solar has become not just the cheapest form of new electricity in history, but the fastest-growing energy technology ever deployed, and the International Energy Agency said that the pace of deployment is now ahead of the trajectory required for net zero by 2050. Â
51. Battery storage transformed the economics of renewables
Global battery storage capacity surged 76% in 2024, making investments in solar and wind energy much more attractive, and vice-versa. As with solar, the pace of change stunned even the most cynical observers. Price wars between the big Chinese manufacturers pushed battery costs to record lows, and global battery manufacturing capacity increased by 42%, setting the stage for future growth in both grid storage and electric vehicles - crucial for the clean flexibility required by a renewables-dominated electricity system. The world's first large-scale grid battery installation only went online seven years ago; by next year, global battery storage capacity will exceed that of pumped hydro.
65. Democracy proved remarkably resilient in a record year of elections
More than two billion people went to the polls this year, and democracy fared far better than most people expected, with solid voter turnout, limited election manipulation, and evidence of incumbent governments being tamed. It wasn't all good news, but Indonesia saw the world's biggest one day election, Indian voters rejected authoritarianism, South Korea's democratic institutions did the same, Bangladesh promised free and fair elections following a 'people's victory', Senegal, Sri Lanka and Botswana saw peaceful transfers of power to new leaders after decades of single party rule, and Syria saw the end of one of the world's most horrific authoritarian regimes.
66. Global leaders committed to ending violence against children
In early November, while the eyes of the world were on the US election, an event took place that may prove to be a far more consequential for humanity. Five countries pledged to end corporal punishment in all settings, two more pledged to end it in schools, and another 12, including Bangladesh and Nigeria, accepted recommendations earlier in the year to end corporal punishment of children in all settings. In total, in 2024 more than 100 countries made some kind of commitment to ending violence against children. Together, these countries are home to hundreds of millions of children, with the WHO calling the move a 'fundamental shift.'
73. Space exploration hit new milestones
NASAâs Europa Clipper began a 2.9 billion kilometre voyage to Jupiter to investigate a moon that may have conditions for life; astronomers identified an ice world with a possible atmosphere in the habitable zone; and the James Webb Telescope found the farthest known galaxy. Closer to Earth, China landed on the far side of the moon, the Polaris Dawn crew made a historic trip to orbit, and Starship moved closer to operational use â and maybe one day, to travel to Mars.Â
74. Next-generation materials advanced
A mind-boggling year for material science. Artificial intelligence helped identify a solid-state electrolyte that could slash lithium use in batteries by 70%, and an Apple supplier announced a battery material that can deliver around 100 times better energy density. Researchers created an insulating synthetic sapphire material 1.25 nanometers thick, plus the worldâs thinnest lens, just three atoms across. The worldâs first functioning graphene-based semiconductor was unveiled (the long-awaited âwonder materialâ may finally be coming of age!) and a team at Berkeley invented a fluffy yellow powder that could be a game changer for removing carbon from the atmosphere.
-via Fix The News, December 19, 2024
#renumbered this to reflect the article numbering#and highlight just how many stories of hope there are#and how many successes each labeled story contains#2024#good news#hope#hope posting#hopeposting#hopepunk#conservation#sustainability#public health#energy#quality of life#human rights#science and technology
3K notes
·
View notes
Text
THERE'S SOMEONE IN THE WOODS! â GETO SUGURU
KINKTOBER WEEK ONE

SYNOPSIS...walking home from a halloween party, you decided to take a shortcut, but an eerie feelings creeps up your spine and it feels like eyes are watching your every move
INFO...stalker!geto x fem!reader, for the sake of the story everything is consensual, a fantasy between geto and reader, stalking, groping, fingering, ripping clothes, sex in the woods, choking, hair pulling, oral (m!receiving), deep throating, rough, name calling, degradation, slapping, spanking, not proofread
OTHER...likes and reblogs are appreciated
kinktober 2024 masterlist
The wind howled in your ears and the moon was illuminating your every step home. You were cold, the costume that you had on was no help, shivering as you hugged yourself tightly. It was a stupid idea to go to a Halloween party without thinking of how you were going to get back home. Everyone was either drunk driving, or their cars were already filled with other passengers, and to put the cherry on topâŠyour phone had died so you couldnât call anyone to pick you up. You mentally cursed at yourself for staying so late in the first place, it had to be at least three in the morning. Everyone else was asleep and done with their trick or treating activities, lights off at every house in your sight.
âFuck me,â you sighed, stopping when you came to a fork in the road. You took the left path knowing that it was a shortcut to your house and you didnât plan on walking any longer than you needed to in these godforsaken heels. The wind brushed against your exposed skin, goosebumps climbing their way up your body. The further you stepped into the forest, darkness began to surround you. The large, twisted branches allowing very few rays of moonlight to shine through. Tall trees hovered over you, casting shadows. Youâd be lying if you said this shortcut wasnât one hundred times creepier at night compared to day.
Leaves rustled in the wind, branched snapped under your feet and you couldnât help but look over your shoulder every five seconds to make sure no one was following you. It felt like eyes were watching your every movement, dark figures in the tree line stalking you like prey, waiting to pounce. âItâs all in your head,â you mumbled to yourself, walking faster. Though, your words were no help. Your eyes darted in every direction, barely paying attention to what was in front of you causing you to trip over a tree root sticking out. You fell to your knees, wincing in pain when you saw little blood droplet stain your stockings. âYou gotta be kidding me,â you whined.
As you sat there on the floor trying to regain yourself, you heard a twig snap in the distance. With wide eyes, you got up as quickly as you could and looked around. âHello?â You called out, your voice echoing through the forest. And just like that, you heard it again. Your feet moved before you could even think and you began to run as fast as you could in the shoes you were wearing. It would be better to take them off but you couldnât stop now.
Your breathing quickened with each passing second and just a few feet behind you, you could hear footsteps. Fear struck your heart and you could only focus on the clearing up ahead. You werenât sure if you were imagining it or if it was some animal, but you werenât going to stop and check. Something didnât feel right and thatâs all you needed to know to get your ass out of here. The clearing was only so close now and your chest burned from the cold air that filled your lungs. Your heartbeat thumped loudly in your ears and the pain from your busted knee dissipated from the adrenaline rushing through you.
The streetlights came into view and just before you could make it, you felt a hard tug on your dress, a rough hand pulling you back into the darkness and covering your mouth as you screamed into it, squirming around in his tight grip. Each kick and punch to his body didnât do a thing and the clearing soon began to grow smaller. âShh, shh, shh.â His breath tickled your ear. âDonât be scared,â he whispered. He pushed you up against a tree, slowly appearing in your view. You couldnât quite make out his face, but his tall silhouette, muscular frame, and long dark hair was quite obvious. âPromise me you wonât scream? If you do, youâll be in big trouble.â
Your entire body was shaking, weak. You had no idea what was going to happen. You didnât know if he had a weapon, but you didnât want to find out the hard way. He slowly removed his from your mouth, and let out a chuckle with how hard you were breathing. âPlease donât hurt me,â you sniffled, tears pouring from your eyes. You felt your body was glued to the tree, any sudden movement would make you drop. âWhat do you want? I donât have any moneyâŠhere,â you handed him your phone, âtake it, itâs all I have.â More tears streamed down your face.
He looked at your phone with disinterest before looking back up at you. âDonât you recognize me?â He questioned. You meekly shook your head no. âI guess I did a good job then,â he laughed. âI thought you noticed me but I guess not.â He brushed his hand against your cheek, wiping away your tears. âI was watching you the whole night. Watching you get drunk, dance with your friends, kiss random strangers, and I kept thinking how pretty you were. Ever since you walked in that door.â He gripped your chin tightly, leaning in closely in the crook of your neck.
You whimpered, eyes squeezing shut as he smelled you. âPlease, let me go. Iâll do anything.â You werenât sure if negotiating with him was going to work, but you were willing to do anything in order to just go home. But, he completely ignored you and continued rubbing up on you. His hands roamed freely, down your stomach and back, up to your tits where he gave them a squeeze. It wasnât until he moved away from you that you saw some of his features. His chiseled face, and dark, narrow eyes, his slightly tan skin, and plump lips. His hair flowed with the wind, the leaves falling from above.
Within a split second, he pushed his lips onto yours, roughly kissing you, his tongue forcefully pushing inside your mouth. His hand wrapped around your throat, pinning you to the tree while his other hand reached under your dress to rub your cunt through your stocking and panties. You whimpered into the kiss, pulling away to catch your breath. âThese are in the fucking way,â he grunted, ripping your tights with one hand. He pushed your panties to the side, smirking as he ran his finger up and down your slit. A small gasp left his lips when he could feel your juices coat his finger. âYouâre wet. This turn you on? Being chased and caught in the woods so some stalker could fuck you?â His slipped his finger inside, watching the way your jaw fell open.
âYouâre just as sick as I imagined,â he let out a deep chuckle, curling his finger inside of you before adding another. He still had you pinned against the tree with your legs spread, your dress bunched up at your waist while he thrusted his long, thick fingers inside of you. âYouâre sucking my fingers right in.â A smirk formed at the corner of his lips, your pussy squelching the faster he went, your juices dripping down his fingers.
A small whine escaped your throat looking at the man in front of you. You werenât sure whether to be scared or turned on. Maybe you were both. Was it wise to entertain this? That question ran through your head over and over. He leaned back towards your lips, hungry for another kiss, swallowing your moans and whimpers. Without thinking, your arms wrapped around him as your legs grew weak, nearly falling from how good his fingers felt inside of you.
His dick strains against his slacks, damn near painful from how hard he was. âGet on the fucking floor.â He slips his fingers out from inside you, pushing you down to your knees and against the tree. You look up at him confused before he sticks his fingers in your mouth, making you taste yourself on your fingers. Heâs quick to undo his belt, unbuttoning his pants and pulling them down along with his boxers. Your eyes widen as his dick springs out, swollen red tip, and pulsating veins on either side of his shaft. Precum drips from the tip and he smears it over his cock, slowly jerking himself off to the sight of you sucking his fingers.
âStick out that tongue for me, baby. Open up.â He removes his fingers from your mouth, grabbing a fistful of your hair before he slaps his heavy dick on your tongue. âGood fucking girl,â he sighs. He rubs his dick all over your face, slapping you with in, pushing it between your lips. He grips your hair tighter, pushing your head down onto his cock. âFuckkkk,â he moans as feels your warm tongue rub along his shaft and your throat squeeze around him. You immediately gag as he goes further, eyes watering before you gag again, your nose touching his pelvis. âStay just like that, donât you fucking move.â He holds your head down for a few seconds before he lets go, allowing you to breathe.
You gasp for air, letting out dry coughs as he laughs at you. Strings of spit connect from your mouth to his dick, dripping down to his balls. His hand grips your hair again and you let out a pained whimper. âFirst time taking dick down your throat, huh?â He mocks you, stilling laughing in your face. You stare up at him with tearful eyes, wiping your mouth of all the spit. But before you could blink, a sharp pain spreads across your cheek, your head jolting to the other side. Did he just slap you? âDid I say you could wipe your mouth? No, no I donât think I did. I like it messy, so get used it.â With force, he shoves his dick back in your throat.
You throat closes in around him again, gagging. Tears stream down your face as he fucks your mouth. Glug glug glug glug. You place your hands on his thighs in attempt to get him to slow down but he just goes harder, the back of head pushed against the tree and trapped between his thighs. He pushes your nose against his pelvis once more, spit dripping down your chin and from his balls. âUgh, fuck! This throat feels so good!â His abs tense up and your eyes roll into the back of your head before he removes himself from your throat.
Youâre coughing again, chest heaving up and down while you sit there on your knees trying to catch your breath. âPlease, I canât, my throat hurts.â Your brows furrow.
He grips your chin, forcing you to look up at him. âSomeoneâs gotta teach you how to suck dick properly, baby. I donât give a fuck if your throat hurts,â he harshly says. He slaps his dick against your face, smearing your spit all over. âCome on, impress me.â He stares down at you with those dark eyes. Youâre quick to understand that he wants you to suck his dick yourself. âRemember, I like it messy.â
Both hands wrap around his cock, jerking him off as you move your wrist in a circular motion, taking the rest of him in your mouth. Your tongue swirling around his head, gathering as much spit as you could. You look up at him, taking him slightly further down your throat before coming back up. âThatâs it, keep those eyes on me. Donât you dare fucking look away.â He grits his teeth, eyes rolling back when you bob your head up and down his shaft. Your jaw grows tired, pulling away to give yourself a break, your hands still gripping his length.
Streaks of mascara stain your cheeks, your lip stick smeared across your lips. He reaches down to pet your face, admiring the view. He can see that your scared, but he can also tell that youâre enjoying this. It only makes him want to get your blood pumping more. âMake me fucking cum. Put it back in your mouth.â He places his hand on the back of your head, pushing it down, your throat accommodating to his size. âYouâre such a quick learner. Taking it like a fucking whore.â He bites down on his bottom lip, thrusting his hips at a sharp pace. âOpen up that throat. Come on,â he growls.
You body jolts forward as you gag, your nails digging into his thighs as he pushes your nose against his pelvis. You can feel him twitch and pulsate in your throat and before you know it hot spurts of cum coat your throat. âUh huh, fuck, fuck. Take it, baby. Mmmph!â His jaw goes slack, holding your head down until your slapping his thighs to breathe. Luckily, he lets you pull away after he drains all of his cum. You barely have time to recover before heâs snatching you back to your feet, spinning you around and pushing you against the tree. âDid such a good job sucking my dick. I wanna know if this pussy can do the same.â A swift slap to your ass makes you whimper, holding onto the tree for support while it scratches at your skin.
âGo slow, please,â you beg. You wish you wouldâve never said anything because your words only added fuel to the fire. Itâs been a while since youâve slept with anyone and slipping him that piece of information made him do the opposite of what you asked for.
âGo slow? Huh? No, no.â His hand snaked around your throat, pulling your back against his chest while he whispered in your ear. âIâll do what I want with you.â He smacked your ass again, tearing off your panties and tossing them somewhere into the woods. âSay you want me to fuck you,â he ordered. You silently stood there in his arms, biting down on your bottom lip as you braced for whatever he was going to give you. âSay it!â He huskily whispered, rubbing his shaft up and down your sopping slit.
âFuck me,â you meekly spoke.
âWhat was that, baby? I couldnât quite hear you.â He kissed your jaw so softly, his other hand reaching down to toy with your puffy clit. He let out a blissful sigh as your moans, continuing to rub it in circles in such a teasing manner. âSay it again.â
âFuck me, please,â you said a little louder this time. âAh!â A yelp left your lips when he slipped inside, pushing his entire length in, the burning stretch making you wince. âOh fuck!â You whined. His thrusts were brutal, his cock reaching your deepest points. His arm wrapped your torso, holding you up while simultaneously pulling you back on his cock. The sudden sensation of him inside you became so overwhelming, you couldnât help but squirm in his grip.
The sound of skin to skin echoed through the woods and your lewd moans along with it. Ripples of pleasure shot through every part of your body. Your hands reached out for the tree, finding stability to hold yourself up. His breath shuddered against your neck, desperate moans and grunts filling your ears. âYouâre so fucking wetânnngh fuck!â He growled. His fat tip kissed your cervix with each thrust, tears pricking your eyes before spilling over. Suddenly, he slowed down his thrusts, going harder and slower, allowing you to feel every throbbing inch.
âAh!â You squealed when he slammed his hips against yours, only to slowly pull back out again. Each hard jolt of his hips sent your body forward, your knees already ready to give out. âAh!â You screamed in pleasure, reaching down to grip onto his forearm.
His hand shot over your mouth, muffling your cries and moans. âGo ahead and scream, baby. You think someone is gonna hear you? Itâs just meâŠandâŠyou.â Each of his words were punctuated with hard thrusts. You moaned into his hand, your eyes screwed shut. He could feel you clench around him, letting out a blissful sigh. He pressed against you, going as deep as he could and stayed there. A sharp gasp escaped your throat, eyes widening as you tried to move your hips. âYouâre mine now,â he breathily whispered.
âMmph! Mmmph!â As he began pounding into you again your eyes rolled back, feeling him in the deepest parts of you. âPlease, please, please,â you cried, voice breaking through your tears. Your mind grew hazy, too clouded to even think clearly. His thrusts were so sharp, so animalistic. He roughly grabbed your chin, forcing it in his direction before planting a hungry, sloppy kiss on your lips. Both of swallowed each others lewd moans, gasping for air between wet kisses.
âYouâre gonna cum, arenât you?â He rasped, staring into your eyes. All you could force was a nod. âYeah? Gonna cum all over your stalkers dick, baby? Do it. Give it to me. Show me how dirty you are.â He pressed deeper, your entire body trembling. The feeling your pussy pulsating around him only fueled him to go faster, his grip on your entire body tightening while you came. âThat itâsâf-fuck!â His voice trembled.
Your entire body quivered with pleasure, high pitched whines spilling from your lips, barely able to form proper words. His brutal pace sent your mind into a spiral. Each greedy stroke sent him closer to the edge, his thrust growing sloppier and his thoughts growing dirtier, thinking of filling you up with his cum and watching it leak out of you. âOh my god! S-slow down! Gonna cuânnngh!â Before you could even say it, you were already cumming a second time, your orgasm ripping through your entire body and sucking the air of your lungs.
âYes, yes! Cum on my dick. Youâre gonna make me cum, baby. Fuck your self on my dick. Work for it.â He pushed your weak body against the tree, his chest rising and falling as you so desperately fucked him, throwing your ass back. He looked down, watching the way he disappeared inside your messy cunt, creaming around him and sucking him in. You circled your hips, moving back and forth, feeling your ass ripple against his pelvis. âFucking work for it.â His hand swatted your ass several times, the stinging sensation that lingered on your skin making you whimper. âAtta girl. Right fucking thereâŠshit, baby. Just like that, just like that,â he whined, reaching down to squeeze the plump flesh.
Low guttural groans collided with your moans, echoing through the lonely forest. He was so close to cumming, you could tell. His big strong hands took ahold of your hips as he pushed himself all the way inside of you. âAhâŠoh fuckâŠmmphâs-shit!â He shuddered, hot spurts of cum painting your walls. You pushed back into him, biting down on your bottom lip, not wanting one last drop to go to waste. After several seconds, he slowly pulled out, trying to catch his breath. He forcefully grabbed you, standing you upright even though your entire body was shaking.
After coming down from your high, you realized you just fucked your stalker and let him cum inside you. Hell, you didnât even know his name. Both of you stared at each other, eyes searching deep within. You were left confused, speechless. You flinched when he brought his hand up to your cheek, gently stroking it with the pad of his thumb. His eyes flickered down to your lips, placing the most gentle kiss on themâthe most gentle one since youâve met him. Yet, you found yourself kissing him back. âWho are you?â Your voice broke the silence, nervously scanning his features.
His lips quirked up into the slightest smirk. âJust the boy who saw you at the Halloween party.â From the very beginning he was never going to give you his name. âYour stalker.â He seemed to take pride in his words, now smiling at you.
You gulped, blinking up at him. âMy stalker.â
taglist (closed):
@roronoaslover @skychapt-blog @prettylil-teine @freakadelick @adamaisfav @tadabzzzbee @ourfinalisation @marlenemckinnonsleftfoot @heliumshorns @ninani-nanina @blankwashed @sadkaomoji @tojis-ball-sack @blkpotionss @sunjayist @cryptxdslxt @aweebthatsjustthere @angelrulez21-blog @lemonintrovert21 @vertigoandvirtues @cloudxluv @kkataleena @eclipsi-shadow @sugusmonkeyy @greatwizardangel @cybersomn1a @screamlast9 @purpleheart835 @ramiiroll @purp1eha1o @veraiku @yu22tas @wrldtups @4evrglow @sugarsticksss @fos-tis-zois @lisvanrouge @asiancupid @bluejayreadsanddreams @sincerelyaixii @digitaltrippers @chuuminn @lolimmafuckings1mp @jellyfishlord @therealest06 @terminosdevozsauve @keanureevessmile @nekoxvi @starlightglimmersworld @m0nsterzl0ve
#ââclassyrbf#kinktober#jjk kinktober#jjk#jujustu kaisen#jjk x reader#jjk smut#geto x reader#geto smut#geto suguru smut#geto suguru x reader#suguru geto smut#suguru geto x reader#geto smut oneshot#geto suguru smut oneshot#jjk x reader smut#jjk smut oneshot
5K notes
·
View notes
Text
the prince married you on a warm summer day under cherry blossoms. he called you his most precious thing, and kissed you as if you were the only two people alive. perhaps he wasnât very gentle with you on your wedding night, but that was how things are, or so your handmaid said.
it was when he began to turn away from you in the night that you felt the frigid wind of change. you had come from another land, another kingdom, and given up everything you knew. should you ever die, it would all fall to him.
on a brisk winter walk, the prince turns to you under that very same cherry tree, now withered like an old croneâs hand. the knife shines in the light reflected off the snow as he drives it into your chest. while blood drips from your lips, he leaves you for the wolves to find.
you beg and plead for this not to be the end. you want revenge.
that is when He comes, stepping through a gash in the world.
his horns are tall and straight, his features both those of a man and a wolf. behind him flows a long, black cape, only partially disguising his naked body. fur rolls down from his hips to his cloven hooves.
âso intent on living.â he bends down over you, tracing the blood that dribbles down your face. âand what would you do, should I give you another chance?â
the words come out a gurgle. âI would kill him.â
this clearly pleases him. he licks the blood off of you, delighting in the taste. at last his mouth settles over yours, his tongue sliding between your lips. it is soft and yet demanding, delicious and sinful.
all at once, fresh breath fills your lungs. you sit up in the snow, and though your dress is soaked with your blood, no wound remains at all. he helps you to your feet, never once letting go of your hand.
âyou made a promise,â he says in your ear, nibbling your lobe. âdonât forget.â
it is easy to find the prince where he sleeps in his bed. with the same dagger, you pry open his flesh and withdraw his beating heart. it is a gift to your new lover.
He is pleased with your work, and rewards you with his thick cock. he is gentle in a way the prince wasnât, but never relenting in his claim on your pleasure. with the deed done, he takes you back to hell with him, where you can be a princess once more.
4K notes
·
View notes